BY WILLIAM WELLS BROWN AUTHOR OF " SKETCHES OF PLACES
AND PEOPLE ABROAD," "THE BLACE MAN," ETC BOSTON LEE & SHEPARD, 149
WASHINGTON STREET i867 pis ltroism and aid $tittifta i L,
, I t.;." . —'; i Entered, according to Act of
Congress, in the year i866, by ~- -. --- WILLIAM WELLS BROWN, In the Clerk's
Office of the District Court of the District of Massachusetts. 41~ - ~ c BOS TON
AN 5l PRINTERS i 1GO. RANDi AV ER ST }D5ERECSQ IN,%~u -ew a r k - P -L I
TO WENDELL PHILLIPS, ESQ., AS A TOKEN OF 3dutivati
-atd (atitudt FOR HIS LONG DEVOTIOio TO THE CAUSE OF FREEDOM, AND HIS UNTIRING
ADVOCACY OF THE EQUALITY OF THE NEGRO, IS MOST RESPECTFULLY INSCRIBED BY THE A
UTHOR. I
" hit
PREFACE. FEELING anxious to preserve for future
reference an account of the part which the Negro took in suppressing the
Slaveholders' Rebellion, I have been induced to write this work. In doing so, it
occurred to me that a sketch of the condition of the race previous to the
commencement of the war would not be uninteresting to the reader. For the
information concerning the services which the blacks rendered to the Government
in the Revolutionary War, I am indebted to the late George Livermore, Esq.,
whose "Historical Research" is the ablest work ever published on the early
history of the negroes of this country. In collecting facts connected with the
Rebellion, I have availed myself of the most reliable information that could be
obtained from newspaper correspondents, as well as from those who were on the
battle-field. To officers and privates of several of the colored regiments I am
under many obligations for detailed accounts of engagements. i II I
PREFACE. No doubt, errors in fact and in judgment will
be discovered, which I shall be ready to acknowledge, and correct in subsequent
editions. The work might have been swelled to double its present size; but I did
not feel bound to introduce an account of every little skirmish in which colored
men were engaged. I waited patiently, before beginning this work, with the hope
that some one more competent would take the subject in hand; but, up to the
present, it has not been done, although many books have been written upon the
Rebellion. WILLIAM WELLS BROWN. CAMBRIDGEPORT, MASS., Jan. 1, 1867. ' vi
CONTENTS. CHAPTER I. BLACKS IN THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR
AND IN 1812. The First Cargo of Slaves landed in the Colonies in 1620.- Slave
Representation in Congress. -Opposition to the Slave-trade. Crispus Attucks, the
First Victim of the Revolutionary War. Bancroft's Testimony.- Capture of Gen.
Prescott.- Colored Men in the War of 1812.- Gen. Andrew Jackson on Negro
Soldiers. CHAPTER II. THE SOUTH-CAROLINA FRIGHT. Denmark Vesey, Peter Poyas, and
their Companions. - The De Plans. - Religious Fanaticism. - The Discovery. - The
Tr Convictions. - Executions......... CHAPTER III. THE NAT TURNER INSURRECTION.
Nat Turner. - His Associates. - Their Meetings. - Nat's Religious Enthusiasm.-
Bloodshed.- Wide-spread Terror.- The Trials and Executions.............. CHAPTER
IV. SLAVE REVOLT AT SEA. Madison Washington. -His Escape from the Soul Liberty.-
His Return. - His Capture. - The The Slave-traders. - Capture of the Vessel. - F
pressed........ I I . is 19 2,6 vii
CONTENTS. CHAPTER V. GROWTH OF THE SLAVE-POWER.
Introduction of the Cotton-gin. - Its Effect on Slavery. - Fugitive Slave Law. -
Anthony Burns. - The Dred Scott Decision. - Im prisonment for reading "Uncle
Tom's Cabin."- Struggles with Slavery.................... 87 CHAPTER VI. THE
JOHN BROWN RAID. John Brown. - His Religious Zeal. - His Hatred to Slavery.- Or
ganization of his Army.- Attack on Harper's Ferry.- His Exe cution. - John
Brown's Companions, Green anid Copeland. - Th Executions.............. CHAPTER
VII. THE FIRST GUN OF THE REBELLION. Nomination of Fremont. - Nomination of
Lincoln. - The Mob Spirit. - Spirit of Slavery.- The Democracy.- Cotton.-
Northern Promises to the Rebels. - Assault on Fort Sumter. - Call for 75,000
Men.- Response of the Colored Men... CHAPTER VIII. THE UNION AND SLAVERY BOTH TO
BE PRESERVED. Union Generals offer to suppress Slave-insurrections.- Ret Slaves
coming into our Army.......... CHAPTER IX. INTELLIGENT CONTRABANDS. James
Lawson. - His Bravery.- Rescue of his Wife and Children. He is sent out on
Important Business.- He fights his Way back. - He is admired by Gens. Hooker and
Sickles.- Rhett's Servant. -" Foraging for Butter and Eggs"......... 60 I i viii
. 44 50 . 56
CONTENTS. CHAPTER X. PROCLAMATIONS OF FREMONT AND
HUNTER. Gen. Fremont's Proclamation, and its Effect on the Public Mind. Gen.
Hunter's Proclamation; the Feeling it created... 69 CHIIAPTER XI. HEROISM OF
NEGROES ON THE HIGH SEAS. Heroism of Negroes.- William Tillman recaptures " The
S. G. Wa ring." -George Green. - Robert Small captures the Steamer "Planter." -
Admiral Dupont's Opinion on Negro Patriotism. 74 CHIIAPTER XII. GENERAL BUTLER
AT NEW ORLEANS. Recognition of Negro Soldiers with Officers of their own Color.
Society in New Orleans. - The Inhuman Master. - Justice. - Change of Opinion. -
The Free Colored Population.. 82 CHAPTER XIII. THE DISTRICT OF COLUMBIA FREE.
Emancipation in the District.- Comments of the Press. - The Good Result. -
Recognition of Hayti and Liberia. - The Slave- trader Gordon............... 93
CHAPTER XIV. THE BLACK BRIGADE OF CINCINNATI. The Great Fright.- Cruel Treatment
of the Colored People by the Police. -Bill Homer and his Roughs.- Military
Training.- Col. Dickson. — The Work. - Mustering Out. - The Thanks.. 100 i, ix
CONTENTS. CHAPTER XV. PROCLAMATION OF FREEDOM.
Emancipation Proclamation.- Copperhead View of it. - "Abraham, spare the South."
- The Contrabands Rejoicing. - The Songs. Enthusiasm. -Faith in God. -Negro Wit.
- "Forever Free". 109 CHIIAPTER XVI. THE NEW POLICY. A New Policy announced.-
Adjutant-Gen. Thomas. - Major-Gen. Prentiss. - Negro Wit and Humor. - Proslavery
Correspondents. - Feeling in the Army. - Let the Blacks fight... 124 CHAPTER
XVII. ARMING THE BLACKS. Department of the South.- Gen. Hunter enlisting Colored
Men. Letter to Gov. Andrew.- Success.- The Earnest Prayer. - Th Negro's
Confidence in God............ CHAPTER XVIII. BATTLE OF MILLIKEN'S BEND.
Contraband Regiments; their Bravery; the Surprise. -Hand-to-hand Fight. - "No
Quarter." - Negroes rather die than surrender. The Gunboat and her Dreadful
Havoc with the Enemy...137 CHAPTER XIX. RAISING BLACK REGIMENTS AT THE NORTH.
Prejudices at the North.- Black Laws of Illinois and Indiana.- Ill Treament of
Negroes. - The Blacks forget their Wrongs, and come to the Rescue...............
x . 130 . 142
CONTENTS. CHAPTER XX. FIFTY-FOURTH MASSACHUSETTS
REGIMENT. Its Organization.- Its Appearance.-Col. Shaw. - Presentation of
Colors. - Its Dress-parade. - Its Departure from Boston. 147 CHAPTER XXI. BLACKS
UNDER FIRE IN SOUTH CAROLINA. Expedition up the St. Mary's River. - The Negroes
long for a Fight. - Their Gallantry in Battle............. 159 CHAPTER XXII.
FREEDMEN UNDER FIRE IN MISSISSIPPI. Bravery of the Freedmen. - Desperation of
the Rebels. - Severe Bat tle. Negroes Triumphant............ 163 CHAPTER XXIII.
BATTLE OF PORT HUDSON. The Louisiana Native Guard. - Capt. Callioux.- The
Weather. Spirit of the Troops. - The Battle begins.-" Charge." - Great Bravery.-
The Gallant Color-bearer.- Grape, Canister, and Shell sweep down the Heroic
Men.- Death of Callioux.- Comments. 167 CHAPTER XXIV. GENERAL BANKS IN
LOUISIANA. Gen. Banks at New Orleans.- Old Slave-laws revived. - Treatment of
Free Colored Persons. - Col. Jonas H. French. -Ill Treatment; at Port
Hudson............... 177 i III
CONTENTS. CHAPTER XXV. HONORS TO THE NOBLE DEAD. Capt.
Andr6 Callioux.- His Body lies in State.- Personal Appear ance.- His Enthusiasm.
- His Popularity.- His Funeral. - The great Respect paid the Deceased.- General
Lamentation.. 186 CIIAPTER XXVI. THE NORTHERN WING OF THE REBELLION. The
New-York Mob. - Murder, Fire, and Robbery. - The City given up to the Rioters.-
Whites and Blacks robbed in Open Day in the Great Thoroughfares.- Negroes
murdered, burned, and their Bodies hung on Lamp-posts.- Southern Rebels at the
Head of the Riot.................192 CHAPTER XXVII. ASSAULT ON FORT WAGNER. The
Fifty-fourth Massachusetts Regiment. - Col. Shaw.- March to the Island.-
Preparation.- Speeches. - The Attack. - Storm of Shot, Shell, and Canister.-
Heroism of Officers and Men. - Death of Col. Shaw. - The Color-sergeant. - The
Retreat. - "Buried with his Niggers."- Comments....... CIIAPTER XXVIII. THE
SLAVE-MARTYR. The Siege of Washington, N.C. -Big Bob, the Negro Scout. - The
Perilous Adventure. -- The Fight. - Return. - Night-expedition - The Fatal
Sandbar.- The Enemy's Shells.- " Somebody's go to die to get us out of this, and
it may as well be me." - Death o Bob.- Safety of the Boat..... CHAPTER XXIX.
BATTLE OF OLUSTEE, FLORIDA. The Union Troops decoyed into a Swamp.- They arc
outnumbered. - Their Great Bravery. - The Heroism of the Fifty-bfourth Massa
chusetts. - Death of Col. Friblev........... 217 xii . 198 . 212
CONTENTS. CHAPTER XXX. BATTLE OF POISON SPRINGS,
ARKANSAS. Hard-fought Battle.- Bravery of the Kansas Colored Troops. - They die,
but will not yield. -Outnumbered by the Rebels. -Another Severe Battle.- The
Heroic Negro, after being wounded, fights till he dies.................225
CHAPTER XXXI. THE MASSACRE AT FORT PILLOW. Assault and Capture of the Fort.-" No
Quarter." -Rebel Atroci ties. - Gens. Forrest and Chalmers. - Firing upon Flags
of Truce. -Murder of Men, Women, and Children.- Night after the As sault.-
Buried Alive. - Morning after the Massacre... 230 CHAPTER XXXII. INJUSTICE TO
COLORED TROOPS. The Pay of the Men. - Government refuses to keep its Promise. -
Ef forts of Gov. Andrew to have Justice done. - Complaint of the Men. - Mutiny.
- Military Murder. -Everlasting Shame...248 CHAPT E R XXXIII. BATTLE OF HONEY
HILL, SOUTH CAROLINA. Union Troops.- The March.- The Enemy.- The Swamp.
Earth-works.- The Battle.- Desperate Fighting.- Great Bra very.- Col. Hartwell.
- Fifty-fifth Massachusetts. - The Dyin and the Dead. - The Retreat.- The
Enemy's Position. - Earth works. - His Advantages. - The Union Forces. - The
Blacks. Our Army outnumbered by the Rebels. - Their Concealed Ba teries. -
Skirmishing. - The Rebels retreat to their Base.- Th Battle.- Great Bravery of
our Men.- The Fifty-fifth Massach setts saves the Army...2 xiii . 255
CONTENTS. CHAPTER XXXIV. BEFORE PETERSBURG AND
RICHMOND. Assault and Failure. - Who to blame. - Heroic Conduct of the Blacks. -
The Mine.- Success at the Second Attack. - Death of a Gallant Negro.- A Black
Officer.......... 265 CHAPTER XXXV. WIT AND HUMOR OF THE WAR. Negro Wit and
Humor.- The Faithful Sentinel. - The Sentinel's Re spect for the United-States
Uniform.- The "Nail-kag."- The Poetical Drummer-boy.- Contrabands on Sherman's
March. Negro Poetry on Freedom. - The Soldier's Speech. - Contraband capturing
his Old Master.............. 273 CHAPTER XXXVI. A THRILLING INCIDENT OF THE WAR.
Heroic Escape of a Slave.- His Story of his Sister.- Resides - Joins the Army,
and returns to the South during the Rebell Search for his Mother.- Finds her.-
Thrilling Scene. stranger than Fiction........ C IHA P T E R XXXVII. PROGRESS
AND JUSTICE. Great Change in the Treatment of Colored Troops.- Negro Appoint
ments. -Justice to the Black Soldiers.- Steamer "Planter." - Progress. - The
Paymaster at last.- John S. Rock...291 C H IA P T E R XXXVIII. FOURTH-OF-JULY
CELEBRATION AT THE HOME OF JEFF. DAVIS. Fourth-of-July Celebration at the Home
of Jeff. Davis in Mississippi. - The Trip. - Joe Davis's Place. - Jeff.'s Place.
- The Dinner. Speeches and Songs.- Lively Thnimes.- Return to Vicksburg. 298 xiv
. 283
CONTENTS. CHAPTER XXXIX. GALLANTRY, LOYALTY, AND
KINDNESS OF THE NEGRO. The Nameless Hero at Fair Oaks.- The Chivalry whipped by
their Former Slaves. - Endurance of the Blacks. - Man in Chains. - One Negro
whips Three Rebels. - Gallantry. - Outrages on the Blacks. -Kindness of the
Negroes. - Welcome... 309 CHAPTER XL. FALL OF THE CONFEDERACY, AND DEATH OF
PRESIDENT LINCOLN. Flight of Jeff. Davis from Richmond.- Visit of President
Lincoln to the Rebel Capital. - Welcome by the Blacks.- Surrender of Gen. Lee.-
Death of Abraham Lincoln.- The Nation in Tears.. 323 CHAPTER XLI. PRESIDENT
ANDREW JOHNSON. Origin of Andrew Johnson.- His Speeches in Tennessee.- The
Negro's Moses. - The Deceived Brahmin. - The Comparison. - Interview with
Southerners. — Northern Delegation. -Delegation of Colored Men.- Their
Appeal........... 328 CHAPTER XLII. ILL TREATMENT OF COLORED PEOPLE SOUTH. The
Old Slaveholders.- The Freedmen. - Murders.- School-teach ers.- Riot at Memphis.
- Mob at New Orleans.- Murder of Union Men. - Riot at a Camp-meeting...........
345 CHAPTER XLIII. PROTECTION FOR THE COLORED PEOPLE. Protection for the Colored
People South.- The Civil Rights Bill. Liberty without the Ballot no Boon. -
Impartial Suffrage. - Tes Oaths not to be depended upon...... xv . 355
CONTENTS. CHIIAPTER XLIV. CASTE. Slavery the
Foundation of Caste. - Black its Preference.- The Gen eral Wish for Black Hair
and Eyes.- No Hatred to Color.- Th White Slave.- A Mistake.- Stole his Thunder.-
The Burman -Pew for Sale........ CHAPTER XLV. SIXTH REGIMENT UNITED-STATES
VOLUNTEERS. Organization of the Regiment.- Assigned to Hard Work. -Brought under
Fire. - Its Bravery. - Battle before Richmond.- Gallantry of the Sixth.-
Officers' Testimony......375 xvi . 361
THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. CHAPTER I BLACKS IN
THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR AND IN 1812. The First Cargo of Slaves landed in the
Colonies in 1620. - Slave Reproe. sentation in Congress. - Opposition to the
Slave-Trade. - Crispns Attucks, the First Victim of the Revolutionary War. -
Bancroft's Testimony. - Capture of Gen. Prescott.- Colored Men in the War of
1812.- Gen. Andrew Jackson on Negro Soldiers. I NOW undertake to write a history
of the part which the colored men took in the great American Rebellion. Previous
to entering upon that subject, however, I may be pardoned for bringing before
the reader the condition of the blacks previous to the breaking out of the war.
The Declaration of American Independence, made July 4, 1776, had scarcely been
enunciated, and an organization of the government commenced, ere the peopl)le
found themselves surrounded by new and trying difficulties, which, for a time,
threatened to wreck the ship of state. The forty- five slaves landed on the
banks of the James
2 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. River, in the
colony of Virginia, from the coast of Africa, in 1620, had multiplied to several
thousands, and were influencing the political, social, and religious
institutions of the country. Brought into the colonies against their will; made
the "hewers of wood and the drawers of water;" considered, in the light of law
and public opinion, as mere chattels, - things to be bought and sold at the will
of the owner; driven to their unrequited toil by unfeeling men, picked for the
purpose from the lowest and most degraded of the uneducated whites, whose moral,
social, and political degradation, by slavery, was equal to that of the slave,
-the condition of the negro was indeed a sad one. The history of this people,
full of sorrow, blood, and tears, is full also of instruction for. mankind. God
has so ordered it that one class shall not degrade another, without becoming
themselves contaminated. So with slavery in America. The institution bred in the
master insulting arrogance, deteriorating sloth, pampered the loathsome lust it
inflamed, until licentious luxury sapped the strength and rottened the virtue of
the slave-owners of the South. Never were the institutions of a people, )r the
principles of liberty, put to such a severe test as those of the American
Republic. The convention to 'rame the Constitution for the government of the
United States had not organized before the slave-masters began to press the
claims of their system upon the delegates. They wanted their property
represented in the national Congress, and undue guarantees thrown around it;
they wanted the African slave-trade made lawful, and their victims returned if
they should attempt to escape; they begged that an article might be inserted in
the Constitution, making it the duty of the General Government to
BLACKS IN THE REVOI,UTIONARY WAR. put down the slaves if
they should imitate their masters in striking a blow for freedom. They seemed
afraid of the very evil they were clinging so closely to. "Thus conscience doth
make cowards of us all." In all this early difficulty, South Carolina took tile
lead against humanity, her delegates ever showing themselves the foes of
freedom. Both in the Federal Convention to frame the Constitution, and in the
State Conventions to ratify the same, it was admitted that the blacks hEad
fought bravely against the British, and in favor of the American Republic; for
the fact that a black man (Crispus Attucks) was the first to give his life at
the commencement of the Revolution was still fresh in their minds. Eighteen
years previous to the breaking out of the war, Attucks was held as a slave by
Mr. William Brown of Framingham, Mass., and from whom he escaped about that
time, taking up his residence in Boston. The Boston Massacre, March 5, 1770, may
be regarded as the first act in the great drama of the American Revolution.
"From that moment," said Daniel Webster, "we may date the severance of the
British Empire." The presence of the British soldiers in King Street excited the
patriotic indignation of the people. The whole community was stirred, and sage
counsellors were deliberating and writing and talking about the public
grievances. But it was not for "the wise and prudent " to be the first to act
against the encroachments of arbitrary power. "A motley rabble of saucy boys,
negroes and mulattoes, Irish Teagues, and outlandish Jack tars" (as John Adams
described them in his plea in defence of the soldiers) could not restrain their
emo tion, or stop to inquire if what they must do was according to the letter of
any law. Led by Crispus Attucks, 3
4 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. the mulatto
slave, and shouting, "The way to get rid of these soldiers is to attack the main
guard; strike at the root; this is the nest," with more valor than discretion,
they rushed to King Street, and were fired upon by Capt. Preston's Company.
Crispus Attucks was the first to fall: he and Samuel Gray and Jonas Caldwell
were killed on the spot. Samuel Maverick and Patrick Carr were mortally wounded.
*The excitement which followed was intense. The bells of the town were rung. An
impromptu townmeeting was held, and an immense assembly was gatliered. Three
days after, on the 8th, a public funeral of the martyrs took place. The shops in
Boston were closed; and all the bells of Boston and the neighboring townls were
rung. It is said that a greater number of persons assembled on this occasion
than were ever before gatlered on this continent for a similar purpose. The body
of Crispus Attucks, the mulatto slave, had been placed in Faneuil Hall, with
that of Caldwell, both being strangers in the city. Maverick was buried from his
mother's house, in Union Street; and Gray from his brother's, in Royal Exchange
Lane. The four hearses formed a junction in King Street and there the procession
marched in columns six deep, with a long file of coaches belonging to the most
distinguished citizens, to the Middle Burying-ground, where the four victims
were deposited in one grave, over which a stone was placed with this
inscription: "Long as in Freedom's cause the wise contend, Dear to your country
shall your fame extend; While to the world the lettered stone shall tell Where
Caldwell, Attucks, Gray, and Maverick fell."
BLACKS IN THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. The anniversary of this
event was publicly commemorated in Boston, by an oration and other exercises,
every year until after our national independence was achieved, when the Fourth
of July was substituted for the Fifth of. March as the more proper day for a
general celebration. Not only was the event commemorated, but the martyrs who
then gave up their lives were remembered and honored. For half a century after
the close of the war, the name of Crispus Attucks was honorably mentioned by the
most noted men of the country who were not blinded by foolish prejudice. At the
battle of Bunker Hill, Peter Salem, a negro, distinguished himself by shooting
Major Pitcairn, who, in the midst of the battle, having passed the storm of fire
without, mounting the redoubt, and waving his sword, cried to the "rebels" to
surrender. The fall of Pitcairn ended the battle in' favor of liberty. A single
passage from Mr. Bancroft's history will give a succinct and clear account of
the condition of' the army, in respect to colored soldiers, at the time of the
battle of Bunker Hill: "Nor should history forget to record, t at, as in the
army at Cambridge, so also in this gallant band, the free negroes of the colony
had their representatives. For the right of free negroes to bear arms in the
public defence was, at that day, as little disputed in New England as their
other rights. They took their place, not in a separate corps, but in the ranks
with the white man; and their names may be read on the pension-rolls of the
country, side by side with those of other soldiers of the Revolution." -
Bancroft's History of the United States, vol. vii. p. 421. 6
6 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. The capture of
Major-Gen. Prescott, of the British army, on the 9th of July, 1777, was an
occasion of great joy throughout the country. Prince, the valiant negro who
seized that officer, ought always to be remembered with honor for his important
service. The exploit was much commended at the time, as its results were highly
important; and Col. Barton, very properly, received from Congress the
complinment of a sword for his ingenuity and bravery. It seems, however, that it
took more than one head to plan and to execute the undertaking. The following
account of the capture is historical: "They landed about five miles from
Newport, and three-quarters of a mile from the house, which they approached
cautiously, avoiding the main guard, which was at some distance. The colonel
went foremost, with a stout, active negro close behind him, and another at a
small distance: the rest followed so as to be near, but not seen. "A single
sentinel at the door saw and hailed the colonel: he answered by exclaiming
against, and inquiring for, rebel prisoners, but kept slowly advancing. The
sentinel again challenged him, and required the countersign. He said he had not
the countersign, but amused the sentry by talking about rebel prisoners, and
still advancing till he came within reach of the bayonet, which, he presenting,
the colonel studlenly struck aside, and seized him. He was immediately secured,
and ordered to be silent on pain of instant death. Ileanwhile, the rest of thle
men surrounding the house, the negro, with his head. at the second stroke,
forced a passage into it, and then into the landlord's apartment. The landlord
at first relfused to give the necessary in
BLACKS IN THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. telligence; but, on the
prospect of present death, he pointed to the general's chamber, which being
instantly opened by the negro's head, the colonel, calling the general by name,
told him he was a prisoner." - Pennsylvania Evening Post, Aug. 7, 1777 (in Frank
Moore's "Diary of the American Revolution," vol. i. p. 468). There is abundant
evidence of the fidelity and bravery of the colored patriots of Rhode Island
during the whole war. Before they had been formed into a separate regiment, they
had fought valiantly with the white soldiers at Red Bank and elsewhere. Their
conduct at the "Battle of Rhode Island," on the 29th of August, 1778, entitles
them to perpetual honor. That battle has been pronounced by military authorities
to have been one of the best-fought battles of the Revolutionary War. Its
success was owing, in a great degree, to the good fighting of the negro
soldiers. Mr. Arnold, in his " History of Rhode Island,'," thus closes his
account of it: "A third time the enemy, with desperate courage and increased
strength, attempted to assail the redoubt, and would have carried it, but for
the timely aid of two Continental battalions despatched by Sullivan to support
his almost exhausted troops. It was in repelling these furious onsets, that the
newly raised black regiment, under Col. Greene, distinguished itself by deeds of
desperate valor. Posted behind a thicket in the valley, they three times drove
back the Hessians, who charged repeatedly down the hill to dislodge them; and so
de termined were the enemy in these successive charges, that, the day after the
battle, the Hessian colonel, upon whom this duty had devolved, applied to
exchange his command, and go to New York, because he dared not 7
8 THE NEGRO IN. THE AMERICAN REBELLION. lead his
regiment again to battle, lest his men should shoot him for having caused them
so much loss." -.4r. nold's History of Rhlode Island, vol. ii. pp. 427, 428.
Three years later, these soldiers are thus mentioned by the Marquis de
Chastellux: "The 5th [of January, 1781] I did not set out till eleven, although
I had thirty miles' journey to Lebanon. At the passage to the ferry, I met with
a detachment of the Rhode-Island regiment,- the same corps we had with us all
the last summer; but they have since been recruited and clothed. The greatest
part of them are negroes or mulattoes: they are strong, robust men; and those I
have seen had a very good appearance."Chastellux's Travels, vol. i. p. 454;
London, 1789. When Col. Greene was surprised and murdered, near Points Bridge,
New York, on the 14th of May, 1781, his colored soldiers heroically defended him
till they were cut to pieces; and the ene,my reached him over the dead bodies of
his faithful negroes. That large numbers of negroes were enrolled in the army,
and served faithfully as soldiers during the whole period of the war of the
Revolution, may be regarded as a well-established historical fact. And it should
be borne in mind, that the enlistment was not confined, by any means, to those
who had before enjoyed the privileges of free citizens. Very many slaves were
offered to, and received by, the army, on the condition that they were to be
emancipated, either at the time of enlisting, or when they had served out the
term of their enlistment. The inconsistency of keeping in slavery any person who
had taken up arms for the defence of our national liberty had led to the passing
of an order forbidding "slaves," as such, to be received as soldiers.
BLACKS IN THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. That colored men were
equally serviceable in the last war with Great Britain is true, as the following
historical document will show: GENERAL JACKSON'S PROCLAMATION TO THE NEGROES.
HEADQUARTERS, SEVENTH MILITARY DISTRICT, MOBILE, Sept. 21, 1814. .To the Free
Colored Inhabitants of Louisiana. Through a mistaken policy, you have heretofore
been deprived of a participation in the glorious struggle for national rights in
which our country is engaged. This no longer shall exist. As sons of freedom,
you are now called upon to defend our most inestimable blessing. As Americans,
your country looks with confidence to her adopted children for a valorous
support, as a faithful return for the advantages enjoyed under her mild and
equitable government. As fathers, husbands, and brothers, you are summoned to
rally around the standard of the Eagle to defend all which is dear in existence.
Your country, although calling for your exertions, does not wish you to engage
in her cause without amply remunerating you for the services rendered. Your
intelligent minds are not to be led away by false representations. Your love of
honor would cause you to despise the man who should attempt to deceive you. In
the sincerity of a soldier, and the language of truth. I address you. To every
noble-hearted, generous freeman of color, volunteering to serve during the
present contest with Great Britain, and no longer, there will be paid the same
bounty, in money and lands, now received by the white 9
10 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. soldiers of the
United States; viz., one hundred and twenty dollars in money, and one hundred
and sixty acres of land. The non-commissioned officers and privates will also be
entitled to the same monthly pay, and daily rations, and clothes, furnished to
any American soldier. On enrolling yourselves in companies, the Major-General
Commanding will select officers for your government from your white
fellow-citizens. Your non-commissioned officers will be appointed from among
yourselves. Due regard will be paid to the feelings of freemen and soldiers. You
will not, by being associated with white men in the same corps, be exposed to
improper comparisons or unjust sarcasm. As a distinct, independent battalion or
regiment, pursuing the path of glory, you will, undivided, receive the applause
and gratitude of your countrymen. To assure you of the sincerity of my
intentions, and my anxiety to engage your invaluable services to our country, I
have communicated my wishes to the Governor of Louisiana, who is fully informed
as to the manner of enrollment, and will give you every necessary information on
the subject of this address. ANDREW JACKSON, Major-General Commanding. [Niles's
Register, vol. vii. p. 205.1 Three months later, Gen. Jackson addressed the same
troops as follows: "To TRHE MEN OF COLOR. Soldiers! From the shores of Mobile I
collected you to arms. I invited you to share in the perils and to divide the
glory of your white countrymen. I expected much from you; for I was
BLACKS IN THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. not uninformed of
those qualities which must render you so formidable to an invading foe. I knew
that you could endure hunger and thirst, and all the hardships of war. I knew
that you loved the land of your nativity, and that, like ourselves, you had to
defend all that is most dear to man. But you surpass my hopes. I have found in
you, united to these qualities, that noble enthusiasm which impels to great
deeds. "Soldiers! The President of the United States shall be informed of your
conduct on the present occasion; and the voice of the Representatives of the
American nation shall applaud your valor, as your general now praises your
ardor. The enemy is near. Hiis sails cover the lakes. But the brave are united;
and, if he finds us contending with ourselves, it will be for the prize of
valor, and fame its noblest reward."-Niles's Register, vol. vii. pp. 345, 346.
Black men served in the navy with great credit to themselves, receiving the
commendation of Com. Perry and other brave officers. Extract of a Letter from
Nathaniel Shaler, Commander of the private-armed S chooner Gen. Tompkins, to his
A4gent in New York, dated, "AT SEA, Jan. 1, 1813. "Before I could get our light
sails in, and almost before I could turn round, I was under the guns, not of a
transport, but of a large frigate! and not more than a quarter of a mile from
her.... Hler first broadside killed two men, and wounded six others.... My
officers conducted themselves in a way that would have done honor to a more
permanent service.... 11 -w
12 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. The name of one
of my poor fellows who was killed ought to be registered in the book of fame,
and remembered with reverence as long as bravery is considered a virtue. Hie was
a black man, by the name of John Johnson. A twenty-four pound shot struck him in
the hip, and took away all the lower part of his body. In this state, the poor
brave fellow lay on the deck, and several times exclaimed to his
shipmates,'IFire away, my boy: no haul a color down.' The other was also a black
man, by the name of John Davis, and was struck in much the same way. He fell
near me, and several times requested to be thrown overboard, saying he was only
in the way of others. " When America has such tars, she has little to fear from
the tyrants of the ocean." - Niles's Weekly Register, Saturday, Feb. 26, 1814.
4m
CHIIAPTER II. THE SOUTH-CAROLINA FRIGHT. Denmark Vesey,
Peter Poyas, and their Companions. - The deep-laid Plans. - Religious
Fanaticism. - The Discovery. - The Trials. - Convi. tions.- Executions. HIUMAN
bondage is ever fruitful of insurrection, wher. ever it exists, and under
whatever circumstances it may be found. An undeveloped discontent always
pervaded the black population of the South, bond and free. Many attempts at
revolt were made: two only, however, proved of a serious and alarming character.
The first was in 1812, the leader of which was Denmark Vesey, a free colored
man, who had purchased his liberty in the year 1800, and who resided in
Charleston, S.C. A carpenter by trade, working among the blacks, Denmark gained
influence with them, and laid a plan of insurrection which showed considerable
generalship. Like most men who take the lead in revolts, he was deeply imbued
with a religious duty; and his friends claimed that he had "a magnetism in his
eye, of which his confederates stood inll great awe: if he once got his eye on a
man, there was no resisting it." After resolving to incite the slaves to
rebellion, Denmark began taking into his confidence such persons as he could
trust, and instructing them to gain adherents from among the more reliable of
both bond and free. 13
14 THE NEGRO IN THIE AMERICAN REBELLION. Peter Poyas, a
slave of more than ordinary foresight and ability, was selected by him as his
lieutenant; and to him was committed the arduous duty of arranging the mode of
attack, and of acting as the military leader. Poyas voluntarily undertook the
management of the most difficult part of the enterprise, the capture of the main
guard-house, and had pledged himself to ad vance alone, and surprise the
sentinel. Gullah Jack, Tom Russell, and Ned Bennett, -the last two were not less
valuable than Peter Poyas; for Tom was an ingenious mechanic, and made
battle-axes, pikes, and other instruments of death with which to carry on the
war, - all of the above were to be generals of brigades, and were let into every
secret of the intended rising. It had long been the custom in Charleston for the
country slaves to visit the city in great numbers on Sunday, and return to their
homes in time to commence work on the following morning. It was, therefore,
determined by Vesey to have the rising take place on Sunday. The slaves of
nearly every plantation in the neighborhood were enlisted, and were to take
part. The details of the plan, however, were not rashly committed to the mass of
the confederates: they were known only to a few, and were finally to have been
announced after the evening prayer-meeting on the appointed Sunday. But each
leader had his own company enlisted, and his own work marked out. When the clock
struck twelve, all were to move. Poyas was to lead a party ordered to assemble
at South Bay, and to be joined by a force from James' Island: he was then to
march up and seize the arsenal and guard-house opposite St. Michael's Church,
and detach a sufficient number to cut off all white citizens who should appear
at the alarm-posts. A second
THE SOUTH-CAROLINA FRIGHT. body of blacks, from the
country and the Neck, headed by Ned Bennett, was to assemble on the Neck, and
seize the arsenal there. A third was to meet at Governor Bennett's Mills under
the command of Rolla, another leader, and, after putting the governor and
intendant to death, to march through the city, or be posted at Cannon's Bridge,
thus preventing the inhabitants of Cannonsborough from entering the city. A
fourth, partly from the country and partly from the neighboring localities in
the city, was to rendezvous on Gadsden's Wharf, and attack the upper
guard-house. A fifth, composed of country and Neck blacks, was to assemble at
Bulkley's Farm, two miles and a half from the city, seize the upper powder
magazine, and then march down; and a sixth was to assemble at Vesey's, and obey
his orders. A seventh detachment, under Gullah Jack, was to come together in
Boundry Street, at the head of King Street, to capture the arms of the Neck
company of militia, and to take an additional supply from Mr. Duguercron's shop.
The naval stores on Meg's Wharf were also to be attacked. Meanwhile a horse
company, consisting of many draymen, hostlers, and butcher boys, was to meet at
Lightwood's Alley, and then scour the streets to prevent the whites from
assembling. Every white man coming out of his own door was to be killed, and" if
necessary, the city was to be fired in several places; a slow match for this
purpose having been )urloined from the public arsenal, and placed in an
accessible position. The secret and plan of attack, however, were incautiously
divulged to a slave named Devany, belonging to Col. Prioleau; and he at once
informed his master's family. The mayor, on getting possession of the facts,
called the city council together for 15
16 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. consultation.
The investigation elicited nothing new, for the slaves persisted in their
ignorance of the matter; and the authorities began to feel that they had been
im. posed upon by Devany and his informants, when another of the conspirators,
being bribed, revealed what lhe knew. Arrest after arrest was made, and the
mayor's court held daily examinations for weeks. After several weeks of
incarceration, the accused, one hundred and twenty in number, were brought to
trial: thirty-four were sentenced to transportation, twenty-seven acquitted by
the court, twenty-five discharged without trial, and thirty-five condemned to
death. With but two or three ai exceptions, all of the conspirators went to the
gallows feeling that they had acted right, and died like men giving their lives
for the cause of freedom. A report of the trial, written soon after, says of
Denmark Vesey, "For several years before he disclosed his intentions to any one,
he appears to have been constantly and assiduously engaged in endeavoring to
imbitter the minds of the colored population against the whites. He rendered
himself perfectly familiar with those parts of the Scriptures which he could use
to show that slavery was contrary to the laws of God; that slaves were bound to
attempt their emancipation, however shocking and bloody might be the
consequences; and that such efforts would not only be pleasing to the Almighty,
but were absolutely enjoined, and their success predicted, in the Scriptures. "
His favorite texts, when he addressed those of his own color, were Zech. xiv.
1-3, and Joshua vi. 21; and, in all his conversations, he identified their
situation with that of the Israelites. Even while walking through the streets in
company with another, he was not idle; for, if
THE SOUTH-CAROLINA FRIGHT. his companion bowed to a
white person, he would rebuke him, and observe that all men were born equal, and
that he was surprised that any one would degrade himself by such conduct; that
he would never cringe to the whites, nor ought any one who had the feelings of a
man. When answered,'We are slaves,' he would sarcastically and indignantly
reply,' You deserve to remain slaves;' and if he were further asked,'IWhat can
we do?' he would remark,' Go and buy a spelling-book, and read the fable of
Hercules and the wagoner,' which he would then repeat, and apply it to their
situation. "He sought every opportunity of entering into conversation with white
persons, when they could be overheard by slaves near by, especially in
grog-shops, during which conversation, he would artfully introduce some bold
remark on slavery; and sometimes, when from the character of the person he was
conversing with he found hlie might be still bolder, he would go so far, that,
had not his declarations in such situations been clearly proved, they would
scarcely have been credited. He continued this course till some time after the
commencement of the last winter; by which time he had not only obtained
incredible influence amongst persons of color, but many feared him more than
they did their masters, and one of them declared, even more than his God." The
excitement which the revelations of the trial occasioned, and the continual
fanning of the flame by the newspapers, was beyond description. Double guard in
the city, the country patrol on horseback and on foot, the watchfulness that was
observed on all plantations, showed the deep feeling of fear pervading the
hearts of the slave-holders, not only in South Carolina, but the fever extended
to the other Southern States, and all 2 1.7
18 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. seemed to feel
that a great crisis had been passed. And indeed, their fears appear not to have
beeif without ground; for a more complicated plan for an insurrection could
scarcely have been conceived. Many were of opinion, that, the rising once begun,
they would have taken the city, and held it, and might have sealed the fate of
slavery in the South. The best account of this whole matter is to be found in an
able article in the "Atlantic Monthly" for June, 1861, from the pen of Col. T.
W. Higginson, and to which I am indebted for the extracts contained in this
sketch.
CIHAPTER III. THE NAT TURNER INSURRECTION. Nat Turner.
- His Associates. - Their Meetings. - Nat's Religious En thusiasm. - Bloodshed.-
Wide-spread Terror. - The Trrials and Exe cutions. The slave insurrection which
occurred in Southampton County, Va., in the year 1831, although not as well
planned as the one portrayed in the preceding chapter, was, nevertheless, more
widely felt in the South. Its leader was Nat Turner, a slave. On one of the
oldest and largest plantations in Southarnpton County, Va., owned by Benjamin
Turner, Esq., Nat was born a slave, on the 2d of October, 1800. His parents were
of unmixed African descent. Surrounded as he was by the superstition of the
slave-quarters, and being taught by his mother that hlie was born for a prophet,
a preacher, and a deliverer of his race, it was not strange that the child
should have imbibed the principles which were afterwards developed in his
career. Early impressed with the belief that he had seen visions, and received
commrunications direct from God, he, like Napoleon, regarded himself as a being
of destiny. In liis childhood, Nat was of an amiable disposition; but
circumstances in which he was placed as a slave brought out incidents that
created a change in his disposition, and turned his kind and docile feeling into
the most intense hatred to the white race. 19
20 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. The
ill-treatment he experienced at the hands of the whites, and the visions he
claimed to have seen, caused Nat to avoid, as far as he could, all intercourse
with his fellow-slaves, and threw around him a gloom and melancholy that
disappeared only with his life. Both the young slave and his friends averred
that a full knowledge of the alphabet came to him in a single night. Impressed
with the belief that his mission was a religious one, and this impression
strengthened by the advice of his grandmother, a pious but ignorant woman, Nat
commenced preaching when about twenty-five years of age, but never went beyond
his own master's locality. In stature, he was under the middle size, long-armed,
round-shouldered, and strongly marked with the African features. A gloomy fire
burned in his looks, and he had a melancholy expression of countenance. Hle
never tasted a drop of ardent spirits in his life, and was never known to smile.
In the year 1828, new visions appeared to Nat; and he claimed to have direct
communication with God. Unlike most of those born under the influence of
slavery, he had no faith in conjuring, fortunetelling, or dreams, and always
spoke with contempt of such things. Being hired out to a cruel master, he ran
away, and remained in the woods thirty days, and could have easily escaped to
the Free States, as did his father some years before; but he received, as he
says in his confession, a communication from the Spirit, which said, "Return to
your earthly master; for he who knoweth his Master's will, and doeth it not,
shall be beaten with many stripes." It was not the will of his earthly but his
heavenly Master that he felt bound to do; and therefore Nat returned. His
fellow-slaves were greatly incensed at him for coming back; for they knew well
his
THE NAT TURNER INSURRECTION. ability to reach Canada,
or some other land of freedom, if he was so inclined. He says further, "About
this time I had a vision, and saw white spirits and black spirits engaged in
battle; and the sun was darkened, the thunder rolled in the heavens, and blood
flowed'in streams; and I heard a voice saying,' Such is your luck, such are you
called on to see; and let it come, rough or smooth, you must surely bear it! "
Some time after this, Nat had, as he says, another vision, in which the spirit
appeared and said, "The Serpent is loosened, and Christ has laid down the yoke
he has borne for the sins of men; and you must take it up, and fight against the
Serpent, for the time is fast approaching when the first shall be last, and the
last shall be first." There is no doubt but that this last sentence filled Nat
with enthusiastic feeling in favor of the liberty of his race, that he had so
long dreamed of. "The last shall be first, arind the first shall be last,"
seemed to him to mean something. He saw in it the overthrow of the whites, and
the establishing of the blacks in their stead; and to this end he bent the
energies of his mind. In February, 1831, Nat received his last communication,
and beheld his last vision. He said, "I was told I should arise and prepare
myself, and slay my enemies with their own weapons." The plan of an insurrection
was now formed in his own mind, and the time had arrived for him to take others
into the secret; and he at once communicated his ideas to four of his friends,
in whom he had implicit confidence. Hark Travis, Nelson Williams, Sam Edwards,
and Henry Porter were slaves like himself, and, like him, had taken their names
from their masters. A meeting must be held with these, and it must take place in
some secluded place where the whites would not disturb 21 .
22 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. them; and a
meeting was appointed. The spot where they assembled was as wild and romantic as
were the visions that had been impressed upon the mind of their leader. Three
miles from where Nat lived was a dark swamp, filled with reptiles, in the middle
of which was a dry spot, reached by a narrow, winding path, and upon which human
feet seldom ever trod, on account of its having been the place where a slave had
been tortured to death by a slow fire, for the crime of having flogged his cruel
and inhuman master. The night for the meeting arrived, and they came together.
Hark brought a pig, Sam bread, Nelson sweet potatoes, and Henry brandy; and the
gathering was turned into a feast. Others were taken in, and joined the
conspiracy. All partook heartily of the food, and drank freely, except Nat. Hle
fasted and prayed. It was agreed that the revolt should commence that night, and
in their own masters' households, and that each slave should give his oppressor
the death-blow. Before they left the swamp, Nat made a speech, in which he said,
"Friends and brothers! We are to commence a great work to-night. Our race is to
be delivered from slavery, and God has appointed us as the men to do his
bidding; and let us be worthy of our calling. I am told to slay all the whites
we encounter, without regard to age or sex. We have no arms or ammunition, but
we will find these ill the houses of our oppressors; and, as we go on, others
can join us. Remember that we do not go forth for the sake of blood and carnage;
but it is necessary, that, in the commencement of this revolution, all the
whites we meet should die, until we have an army strong enough to carry on the
war upon a Christian basis. Remember that ours is not a war for robbery, and to
satisfy
THE NAT TURNER INSURRECTION. our passions: it is a
struggle for freedom. Ours must be deeds, and not words. Then let's away to the
scene of action." Among those who had joined the conspirators was Will, a slave,
who scorned the idea of taking his master's name. Though his soul longed to be
free, he evidently became one of the party as much to satisfy revenge as for the
liberty that he saw in the dim distance. Will had seen a dear and beloved wife
sold to the negro-trader, and taken away, never to be beheld by him again in
this life. His own back was covered with scars, from his shoulders to his feet.
A large scar, running from his right eye down to his chin, showed that he had
lived with a cruel master. Nearly six feet in height, and one of the strongest
and most athletic of his race, he proved to be the most unfeeling of all the
insurrectionists. His only weapon was a broad-axe, sharp and heavy. Nat and his
accomplices at once started for the plantation of Joseph Travis, with whom the
four lived; and there the first blow was struck. In his confession, just before
his execution, Nat said, - "On returning to the house, Hark went to the door
with an axe, for the purpose of breaking it open,- as we knew we were strong
enough to murder the family should they be awakened by the noise; but,
reflecting that it might create an alarm in the neighborhood, we determined to
enter the house secretly, and murder them whilst sleeping. Hark got a ladder,
and set it against the chimney, on which I ascended, and, hoisting a window,
entered and came down stairs, unbarred the doors, and removed the guns from
their places. It was then observed that I must spill the first blood. On which,
armed with a hatchet, and accompanied by Will, I en 23
24 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. tered my
master's chamber. It being dark, I could not give a death-blow. The hatchet
glanced from his head: he sprang from the bed, and called his wife. It was his
last word. Will laid him dead with a blow of his axe." They went from plantation
to plantation, until the whole neighborhood was aroused; and the whites turned
out in large numbers to suppress the rebellion. Nat and his accomplices fought
bravely, but to no purpose. Reinforcements came to the whites; and the blacks
were overpowered and defeated by the superior numbers of the enemy. In this
battle, many were slain on both sides. Will, the blood-thirsty and revengeful
slave, fell with his broad-axe uplifted, after having laid three of the whites
dead at his feet with his own strong arm and his terrible weapon. Hiis last
words were, "Bury my axe with me." For he religiously believed, that, in the
next world, the blacks would have a contest with the whites, and that he would
need his axe. Nat Turner, after fighting to the last with his short sword,
escaped with some others to the woods near by, and was not captured for nearly
two months. When brought to trial, he pleaded "not guilty," feeling, as he said,
that it was always right for one to strike for his own liberty. After going
through a mere form of trial, he was convicted and executed at Jerusalem, the
county-seat for Southhampton County, Va. Not a limb trembled, or a muscle was
observed to move. Thius died Nat Turner, at the early age of thirty-one years, a
martyr to the freedom of his race, and a victim to his own fanaticism. He
meditated upon the wrongs of his oppressed and injured people till the idea of
their deliverance excluded all other ideas from his mind; and he devoted his
life to its realization. Every thing appeared to him a vision, and
THE NAT TURNER INSURRECTION. all favorable omens were
signs from God. H'Ie foretold, that, at his death, the sun would refuse to
shine, and that there would be signs of disapprobation given from Heaven. And it
is true that the sun was darkened, a storm gathered, and more boisterous weather
had never appeared in Southampton County than on the day of Nat's execution. The
sheriff, warned by the prisoner, refused to cut the cord that held the trap. No
black man would touch the rope. A poor old white man, long besotted by drink,
was brought forty miles to be the executioner. Fifty-five whites and
seventy-three blacks lost their lives in the Southampton Rebellion. On the fatal
night, when Nat and his companions were dealing death to all they found, Capt.
Harris, a wealthy planter, had his lite saved by the devotion and timely warning
of his slave Jim, said to have been half-brother to his master. After the revolt
had been put down, and parties of whites were out hunting the suspected blacks,
Capt. Harris, with his faithful slave, went into the woods in search of the
negroes. In saving his master's life, Jim felt that he had done his duty, and
could not consent to become a betrayer of his race; and, on reaching the woods,
he handed his pistol to his master, and said, "I cannot help you hunt down these
men: they, like myself, want to be free. Sir, I am tired of the life of a slave:
please give me my freedom, or shoot me on the spot." Capt. Harris took the
weapon, and pointed it at the slave. Jim, putting his right hand upon his heart,
said, " This is the spot; aim here." The captain fired, and the slave fell dead
at his feet. 25
CHAPTER IV. SLAVE REVOLT AT SEA. Matison Washington.-
His Escape from the South.- His Love of Lib erty. -tIis Return.- His Capture.-
The Brig " Creole." - The Slave traders.- Capture of the Vessel.- Freedom of the
Oppressed. THE revolt on board of the brig "Creole,"' on the high seas, by a
number of slaves who had been shipped for the Southern market, in the year 1841,
created at the time a profound sensation throughout the country. Before entering
upon it, however, I will introduce to the reader the hero of the occasion. Among
the great number of fugitive slaves who arrived in Canada towards the close of
the year 1840, was one whose tall figure, firm step, and piercing eye attracted
at once the attention of all who beheld him. Nature had treated him as a
favorite. His expressive countenance painted and reflected every emotion of his
soul. There was a fascination in the gaze of his finely cut eyes that no one
could withstand. Born of Aftrican parentage, with no mixture in his blood, he
was one of the handsomest of his race. His dignified, calm, and unaffected
features announced at a glance that he was endowed with genius, and created to
guide his fellow-men. He called himself Madison Washington, and said that his
birthplace was in the "Old Dominion." He might have been twenty-five years; but
very few slaves have any correct idea of their age. Madison was not poorly 26
SLAVE REVOLT AT SEA. dressed, and had some money at the
end of his journey, which showed that he was not from amongst the worst used
slaves of the South. He immediately sought em ployment at a neighboring farm,
where he remained some months. A strong, able-bodied man, and a good worker, and
apparently satisfied with his situation, his employer felt that he had a servant
who would stay with him a long while. The farmer would occasionally raise a con
versation, and try to draw from Madison some account of his former life, baut in
this he failed; for the fugitive was a man of few words, and kept his own
secrets. His leisure hours were spent in learning to read and write; and in this
he seemed to take the utmost interest. He appeared to take no interest in the
sports and amusements that occupied the attention of others. Six months had not
passed ere Madison began to show signs of discontent. In vain his employer tried
to discover the cause. "Do I not pay you enough, and treat you in a becoming
manner? " asked Mr. Dickson one day when the fugitive seemed in a very
desponding mood. "Yes, sir," replied Madison. "Then why do you appear so
dissatisfied of late?" "Well, sir," said the fugitive," since you have treated
me with such kindness, and seem to take so much interest in me, I will tell you
the reason why I have changed, and appear to you to be dissatisfied. I was born
in slavery, in the State of Virginia. From my earliest recollections I hated
slavery, and determined to be free. I have never yet called any man master,
though I have been held by three different men who claimed me as their property.
The birds in the trees and the wild beasts of the forest made me feel that I,
like them, ought 27
28 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. to be free. My
feelings were all thus centred in the one idea of liberty, of which I thought by
day and dreamed by night. I had scarcely reached my twentieth year, when I
became acquainted with the angelic being who has since become my wife. It was my
intention to have escaped with her before we were married, but circumstances
prevented. "I took her to my bosom as my wife, and then resolved to make the
attempt. But, unfortunately, my plans were discovered; and, to save myself from
being caught and sold off to the far South, I escaped to the woods, where I
remained during many weary months. As I could not bring my wife away, I would
not come without her. Another reason for remaining was that I hoped to get up an
insurrection of the slaves, and thereby be the means of their liberation. In
this, too, I failed. At last it was agreed, between my wife and I, that I should
escape to Canada, get employment, save my earnings, and with it purchase her
freedom. With the hope of attaining this end, I came into your service. I am now
satisfied, that, with the wages I can command here, it will take me not less
than five years to obtainii by my labor the amount sufficient to purchase the
liberty of my dear Susan. Five years will be too long for me to wait; for she
may die, or be sold away, ere I can raise the money. This, sir, makes me feel
low spirited; and I have come to the rash determination to return to Virginia
for my wife." The recital of the story had already brought tears to the eyes of
the farmer, ere the fugitive had concluded. In vain did Mr. Dickson try to
persuade Madison to give up the idea of going back into the very grasp of the
tyrant, and risking the loss of his own freedom without
SLAVE REVOLT AT SEA. securing that of his wife. The
heroic man had made up his mind, and nothing could move him. Receiving the
amount of wages due him from his employer, Madison turned his face once more
towards the South. Supplied with papers purporting to have been made out in
Virginia, and certifying to his being a freeman, the fugitive had no difficulty
in reaching the neighborhood of his wife. But these "free papers" were only
calculated to serve him where he was not known. Madison had also provided
himself with files, saws, and other implements, with which to cut his way out of
any prison into which he might be cast. These instruments were so small as to be
easily concealed in the lining of his clothing; and, armed with them, the
fugitive felt sure he should escape again were he ever captured. On his return,
Madison met, in the State of Ohio, many of those whom he had seen on his journey
to Canada; and all tried to prevail upon him to give up the rash attempt. But to
every one he would reply, "Liberty is worth nothing to me while my wife is a
slave." When near his former home, and unable to travel in open day without
being detected, Madison betook himself to the woods during the day, and
travelled by night. At last he arrived at the old farm at night, and hid away in
the nearest forest. Here he remained several days, filled with hope and fear,
without being able to obtain any infor. mation about his wife. One evening,
during this suspense, Madison heard the singing of a company of slaves, the
sound of which appeared nearer and nearer, until he became convinced that it was
a gang going to a corn-shucking; and the fugitive resolved that he would join
it, and see if he could get any intelligence of his wife. In Virginia, as well
as in most of the other corn-rais 29
30 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. ing
slave-States, there is a custom of having what ie termed "a corn-shucking," to
which slaves from the neighboring plantations, with the consent of their mas.
ters, are invited. At the conclusion of the shucking, a supper is provided by
the owner of the corn; and thus, together with the bad whiskey which is freely
circulated on such occasions, the slaves are made to feel very happy. Four or
five companies of men may be heard in different directions, and at the same
time, approaching the place of rendezvous; slaves joining the gangs along the
roads as they pass their masters' farms. Madison came out upon the highway; and,
as the company came along singing, he fell into the ranks, and joined in the
song. Through the darkness of the night he was able to keep from being
recognized by the remainder of the company, while he learned from the general
conversation the most important news of the day. Although hungry and thirsty,
the fugitive dared not go to the supper-table for fear of recognition. However,
before he left the company that night, he gained information enough to satisfy
him that his wife was still with her old master; and he hoped to see her, if
possible, on the following night. The sun had scarcely set the next evening, ere
Madison was wending his way out of tile forest, and going towards the home of
his loved one, if the slave can be said to have a home. Susan, the object of his
affections, was indeed a woman every way worthy of his love. Madison knew well
where to find the room usually occupied by his wife, and to that spot he made
his way on arriving at the plantation; but, in his zeal and enthusiasm, and his
being too confident of success, he committed a blunder which nearly cost him his
life. Fearful that if he waited until a late hour,
SLAVE REVOLT AT SEA. Susan would be asleep, and in
awakening her she would in her fright alarm the household, Madison ventured to
her room too early in the evening, before the whites in the "great house" had
retired. Observed by the overseer, a sufficient number of whites were called in,
and the fugitive secured ere he could escape with his wife; but the heroic slave
did not yield until he with a club had laid three of his assailants upon the
ground with his manly.blows; and not then until weakened by loss of blood.
Madison was at once taken to Richmond, and sold to a slave-trader, then making
up a gang of slaves for the New-Orleans market. The brig "Creole," owned by
Johnson & Eperson of Richmond, and commanded by Capt. Enson, lay at the
Richmond dock, waiting for her cargo, which usually consisted of tobacco, hemp,
flax, and slaves. There were two cabins for the slaves, -one for the men, the
other for the women. The men were generally kept in chains while on the voyage;
but the women were usually unchained, and allowed to roam at pleasure in their
own cabin. On the 27th of October, 1841, "The Creole" sailed from Hampton Roads,
bound for New Orleans, with her full load of freight, a hundred and thirty-five
slaves, and three passengers, besides the crew. Forty of the slaves were owned
by Thomas McCargo, nine belonged to Henry Hewell, and the remainder were held by
Johnson & Eperson. Hewell had once been an overseer for McCargo, and on this
occasion was acting as his agent. Among the slaves owned by Johnson &
Eperson, was Madison Washington. He was heavily ironed, and chained down to the
floor of the cabin occupied by the men, which was in the forward hold. As it was
known 3-1
32 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. by Madison's
purchasers that he had once escaped, and had been in Canada, they kept a
watchful eye over him. The two cabins were separated, so that the men and women
had no communication whatever during the passage. Although rather gloomy at
times, Madison on this occasion seemed very cheerful, and his owners thought
that he had repented of the experience he had undergone as a runaway, and in the
filture would prove a more easily-governed chattel. But, from the first hour
that he had entered the cabin of" The Creole," Madison had been busily engaged
in the selection of men who were to act parts in the great drama. He picked out
each one as if by intuition. Every thing was done at night and in the dark, as
far as the preparation was concerned. The miniature saws and files were
faithfully used when the whites were asleep. In the other cabin, among the
slave-women, was one whose beauty at once attracted attention. Though not tall,
she yet had a majestic figure. Her well-moulded shoulders, prominent bust, black
hair which hung in ringlets, mild blue eyes, finely-chiselled mouth, with a
splendid set of teeth, a turned and well-rounded chin, skin marbled with the
animation of life, and veined by blood given to her by her master, she stood as
the representative of two races. With only one-eighth of African blood, she was
what is called at the South an "octoroon." It was said that her grandfather had
served his country in the Revolutionary War, as well as in both HIouses of
Congress. This was Susan, the wife of Madison. Few slaves, even among the
best-used house-servants, had so good an opportunity to gain general information
as she. Accustomed to travel with her mistress, Susan had of.
SLAVE REVOLT AT SEA. ten been to Richmond, Norfolk,
White-Sulphur Springs, and other places of resort for the aristocracy of the Old
Dominion. Her language was far more correct than that of most slaves in her
position. Susan was as devoted to Madison as she was beautiful and accomplished.
After the arrest of her husband, and his confinement in Richmond jail, it was
suspected that Susan had long been in possession of the knowledge of his
whereabouts when in Canada, and knew of his being in the neighborhood; and for
this crime it was resolved that she should be sold, and sent off to a Southern
plantation, where all hope of escape would be at an end. Each was not aware that
the other was on board "The Creole;" for Madison and Susan were taken to their
respective cabins at different times. On the ninth day out, "The Creole"
encountered a rough sea, and most of the slaves were sick, and therefore were
not watched with that vigilance that they had been since she first sailed. This
was the time for Madison and his accomplices to work, and nobly did they perform
their duty. Night came on, the first watch had just been summoned, the wind
blowing high, when Madison succeeded in reaching.the quarter-deck, followed by
eighteen others, all of whom sprang to different parts of the vessel, seizing
whatever they could wield as weapons. The crew were nearly all on deck. Capt.
Enson and Mr. Merritt, the first mate, were standing together, while Hewell was
seated on the companion, smoking a cigar. The appearance of the slaves all at
once, and the loud voice and commanding attitude of their leader, so completely
surprised the whites, that "They spake not a word; But, like dumb statues or
breathless stones, Stared at each other, and looked deadly pale." 33
34 THE NE(RIO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. The officers
were all armed; but so swift were the motions of Madison that they had nearly
lost command of the vessel before they attempted to use them. Hiewell, the
greater part of whose life had been spent on the plantation in the capacity of a
negro-driver, and who knew that the defiant looks of these men meant something,
was the first to start. Drawing his old horsepistol from under his coat, he
fired at one of the btAacks, and killed him. The next moment Hewell lay dead
upon the deck, for Madison had struck him with a capstan bar. The fight now
became general, the white passengers, as well as all the crew, taking part. The
battle was Madison's element, and he plunged into it without any care for his
own preservation or safety. He was an instrument of enthusiasm, whose value and
whose place was in his inspiration. " If the fire of heaven was in my hands, I
would throw it at those cowardly whites," said he to his companions, before
leaving their cabin. But in this he did not mean revenge, only the possession of
his freedom and that of his fellow-slaves. Merritt and Gifford, the first and
second mates of the vessel, both attacked the heroic slave at the same time.
Both were stretched out upon the deck with a single blow each, but were merely
wounded: they were disabled, and that was all that Madison cared for for the
time being. The sailors ran up the rigging for safety, and a moment more he that
had worn the fetters an hour before was master of the brig "Creole." His
commanding attitude and daring orders, now that he was firee, and his perfect
preparation for the grand alternative of liberty or death which stood before
him, are splendid exemplifications of the true heroic. After his accomplices
hlad covered-thele slaver's deckl Madison forbade the shedding of more blood,
and ordered the sailors to come down, which they
SLAVE REVOLT AT SEA. did, and with his own hands
dressed their wounds. A guard was placed over all except Merritt, who was re.
tained to navigate the vessel. With a musket doubly charged, and pointed at
Mlerritt's breast, the slaves made him swear that he would safely take the brig
into a 13iBitish port. All things now secure, and the white men in chains or
under guard, Madison ordered that the fetters should be severed from the limbs
of those slaves who still wore them. The next morning "Capt. Washington" (for
such was the name he now bore) ordered the cook to provide the best breakfast
that the storeroom could furnish, intending to surprise his fellow. slaves, and
especially the females, whom he had not yet seen. But little did he think that
the woman for whom he had risked his liberty and life would meet him at the
breakfast-table. The meeting of the hero and his beautiful and accomplished
wife, the tears of joy shed, and the hurrahs that followed from the men, can
better be imagined than described. Madison's cup of joy was filled to the brim.
He had not only gained his own lib. erty, and that of one hundred and
thirty-four others, but his dear Susan was safe. Only one man, Hewell, had been
killed. Capt. Enson, and others who were wounded, soon recovered, and were
kindly treated by Madison, and for which they proved ungrateful; for, on the
second night, Capt. Enson, Mr. Gifford, and Merritt, took advantage of the
absence of Madison from the deck, and attempted to retake the vessel. The
slaves, exasperated at this treachery, fell upon the whites with deadly weapons.
The captain and his men fled to the cabin, pursued by the blacks. Nothing but
the heroism of the negro leader saved the lives of the white men on this
occasion; for, as the slaves were rushing into the cabin, 35
36 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. Madison threw
himself between them and their victims, exclaiming, "Stop! no more blood. My
life, that was perilled for your liberty, I will lay down for the protection of
these men. They have proved themselves unworthy of life which we granted them;
still let us be magnanimous." By the kind heart and noble bearing of Madison,
the vile slave-traders were again permitted to go unwhipped of justice. This act
of humanity raised the uncouth son of Africa far above his Anglo-Saxon
oppressors. The next morning "The Creole " landed at Nassau, New Providence,
where the noble and heroic slaves were warmly greeted by the inhabitants, who at
once offered protection, and extended hospitality to them. But the noble heroism
of Madison Washington and his companions found no applause from the Government,
then in the hands of the slaveholders. Daniel Webster, then Secretary of State,
demanded of the British- authorities the surrender of these men, claiming that
they were murderers and pirates: the English, however, could not see the point.
Had the " Creole" revolters been white, and committed their noble act of heroism
in another land, the people of the United States would have been the first to
recognize their claims. The efforts of Denmark Vesey, Nat Turner, and Madison
Washington to strike the chains of slavery from the limbs of their enslaved race
will live in history, and will warn all tyrants to beware of the wrath of God
and the strong arm of man. Every iniquity that society allows to subsist for the
benefit of the oppressor is a sword with which she herself arms the oppressed.
Right is the most dangerous of weapons: woe to him who leaves it to his enemies.
CHIIAPTER V. GROWTH OF THE SLAVE-POWER. Introduction of
the Cotton-gin. - Its effect on Slavery. - Fugitive Slave Law. -Anthony Burns. -
The Dred Scott Decision. - Imprisonment for reading "Uncle Tom's Cabin." -
Struggles with Slavery. THE introduction of the cotton-gin into the South, by
Whitney of Connecticut, had materially enhanced the value of slave property; the
emancipation societies of Virginia and Maryland had ceased to petition their
Legislatures for the "Gradual Emancipation" of the slaves; and the above two
States had begun to make slave-raising a profitable business, when the American
Antislavery Society was formed in the city of Philadelphia, in the year 1833.
The agitation of the question in Congress, the mobbing of William Lloyd Garrison
in Boston, the murder of the Rev. E. P. Lovejoy in Illinois, and the attempt to
put down free speech throughout the country, only hastened the downfall of the
institution. In the earlier days of the Antislavery movement, not a year,
sometimes hardly a month, passed that did not bear upon its record the report of
mobs, almost always ferocious in spirit, and sometimes cruel and blood-stained
in act. It was the first instinctive and brutal response of a proslavery people
convicted of guilt and called to repentance; and it was almost universal.
Wherever antislavery was preached, honestly, and effectually, there the
mobocratic spirit followed it; so that, in those times, 87
38 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. he who escaped
this ordeal was, with some justice, held to be either inefficient or unfaithful.
Hardly a town or city, from Alton to Portland, where much antislavery labor was
bestowed, in the first fifteen years of this enterprise, that was not the scene
of one of these attempts to crush all free discussion of the subject of slavery
by violence or bloodshed. Hardly one of the earlier public advocates of the
cause that was not made to suffer, either in person or in property, or in both,
from popular violence, -the penalty of obedience to the dictates of his own
conscience. Nor was this all: official countenance was often given to the mad
proceedings of the mob; or, if not given, its protection was withheld from those
who were the objects of popular hatred; and, as if this were not enough,
legislation was invoked to the same end. It was suggested to the Legislature of
one of the Southern States, that a large reward be offered for the head of a
citizen of Massachusetts who was the pioneer in the modern antislavery movement.
A similar reward was offered for the head of a citizen of New York. Yet so foul
an insult excited neither the popular indignation nor legislative resentment in
either of those States. Great damage was done to the cause of Christianity by
the position assumed on the question of slavery by the American churches, and
especially those in the Southern States. Think of a religious kidnapper! a
Christian slave-breeder! a slave-trader, loving his neighbor as himself,
receiving the "sacraments" in some Protestant church from the hand of a
Christian apostle, then the next day selling babies by the dozen, and tearing
young women from the arms of their husbands to feed the lust of lecherous New
Orleans! Imagine a
GROWTH OF THE SLAVE-POWER. religious man selling his
own children into eternal bondage! Think of a Christian defending slavery out of
the Bible, and declaring there is no higher law, but atheism is the first
principle of Republican Government! Yet this was the stand taken, and
maintained, by the churches in the slave States down to the day that Lee
surrendered to Grant. One of the bitterest fruits of slavery in our land is the
cruel spirit of caste, which makes the complexion even of the free negro a badge
of social inferiority, exposing him to insult in the steamboat and the railcar,
and in all places of public resort, not even excepting the church; banishing him
from remunerative occupations; expelling him from the legislative hall, the
mnagistrate's bench, and the jury-box; and crushing his noblest aspirations
under a weight of prejudice and proscription which he struggles in vain to throw
off. Against this unchristian and hateful spirit, every lover of liberty should
enter hib solemni protest. This hateful prejudice caused the breaking up of the
school of Miss Prudence Crandall, in the State of Connecticut, in the early days
of the antislavery agitation. Next came the burning of Pennsylvania Hall, one of
the most beautiful edifices in the City of Brotherly Love, simply because
colored persons were permitted to occupy seats by the side of whites. The
enactment by Congress of the Fugitive Slave Law caused the friends of freedom,
both at home and abroad, to feel that the General Government was fast becoming
the bulwark of slavery. The rendition of Thomas Sims, and still later that of
Anthony Burns, was, indeed, humiliating in the extreme to the people of the
Northern States. 39
40 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. On that
occasion, the sons of free, enlightened, and Christian Massachusetts,
descendants of the Pilgrim Fathers, bowed submissively to the behests of a
tyranny more cruel than Austrian despotism; yielded up their dignity and
self-respect; became the allies of slavecatchers, the associates and companions
of bloodhounds. At the bidding of slaveholders and serviles, they seized the
image of God, bound their fellow-man with chains, and consigned him to torture
and premature death under the lash of a piratical overseer. God's law and man's
rights were trampled upon; the self-respect, the constitutional privileges, of
the free States, were ignominiously surrendered. A people who resisted a paltry
tax upon tea, at the cannon's mouth, basely submitted to an imposition tenfold
greater, in favor of brutalizing their fellowmen. Soil which had been moistened
with the blood of American patriots was polluted by the footsteps of
slavecatchers and their allies. The Boston Court House in chains, two hundred
rowdies and thieves sworn in as special policemen, respectable citizens shoved
off the side-walks by these slavecatchers; all for the purpose of satisfying
"our brethren of the South.'? -But this act did not appease the feelings, or
satisfy the demands, of the slave-holders, while it still further inflamed the
fire of abolitionism. The "Dred Scott Decision" added fresh combustibles to the
smouldering heap. Dred Scott, a slave, taken by his master into free Illinois,
and then beyond the line of 36~ 30', and then back into Missouri, sued for and
obtained his freedom on the ground, that, having been taken where by the
Constitution slavery was illegal, his master had lost all claim. But the Supreme
Court, on appeal, reversed the judgment; and Dred Scott, with his wife
GROWTH OF THE SLAVE-POWER. and children, was taken back
into slavery. By this decision in the highest court of American law, it was
affirmed that no free negro could claim to be a citizen of the United States,
but was only under the jurisdiction of the separate State in which he resided;
that the prohibition of slavery in any Territory of the Union was
unconstitutional; and that the slave-owner might go where he pleased with his
property, throughout the United States, and retain his right. This decision
created much discussion, both in America and in Europe, and materially injured
the otherwise good name of our country abroad. The Constitution, thus
interpreted by Judge Taney, became the emblem of the tyrants and the winding
sheet of liberty, and gave a boldness to the people ofthe South, which soon
showed itself, while good men at the North felt ashamed of the Government under
which they lived. The slave-holders in the cotton, sugar, and rice growing
States began to urge the re-opening of the African slave-trade, and the driving
out from the Southern States of all free colored persons. In the Southern
Rights' Convention, which assembled at Baltimore, June 8, 1860, a resolution was
adopted, calling on the Legislature to pass a law driving the free colored
people out of the State. Nearly every speaker took the ground that the free
colored people must be driven out to make the slave's obedience more secure.
Judge Mason, in his speech, said, "It is the thrifty and well-to-do free
negroes, that are seen by our slaves, that make them dissatisfied." A similar
appeal was made to the Legislature of Tennessee. Judge Catron, of the Supreme
Court of the United States, in a long and able letter to "The Nashville Union,"
opposed the driving out 41
42 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. of the colored
people. He said they were among the best mechanics, the best artisans, and the
most indus. trious laborers in the State, and that to drive them out would be an
injury to the State itself. This is certainly good evidence in their behalf. The
State of Arkansas passed a law driving the free colored people out of the State,
and they were driven out three years ago. The Democratic press howled upon the
heels of the free blacks until they had all been expatriated; but, after they
had been driven out, "The Little Rock Gazette "- a Democratic paper - made a
candid acknowledgment with regard to the character of the free colored people.
It said, "Most of the exiled free negroes are industrious and respectable. One
of them, Henry King, we have known from our boyhood, and take the greatest
pleasure in testifying to his good character. The community in which he casts
his lot will be blessed with that noblest work of God, an honest man." Yet these
free colored people were driven out of the State, and those who were unable to
go, as many of the women and childrenf were, were reduced to slavery. "The New
Orleans True Delta" opposed the passage of a similar law by the State of
Louisiana. Among other things, it said, "There are a large free colored
population here, correct in their general deportment, honorable iin their
intercourse with society, and free from reproach so far as the laws are
concerned; not surpassed in the inoffensiveness of their lives by any equal
number of persons in any place, North or South." And yet these free colored
persons were not permitted by law to school their children, or to read books
that treated against the institution of slavery. The Rev. Samuel Green, a
colored Methodist preacher, was con
GROWTH OF THE SLAVE-POWER. victed and sent to the
Maryland penitentiary, in 1858, for the offence of being found reading "Uncle
Tom's Cabin." The growth of the "Free-Soil" party, which had taken the place of
the "Liberty" party; and then the rapid increase of' the "Republican" party; the
struggle in Kansas; thie " Oberlin Rescue Trials;" and, lastly, the "John Brown
Raid," carried the discussion of slavery to its highest point. All efforts, in
Congress, in the proslavery political conventions, and in the churches, only
added fuel to the flame that was fast making inroads upon the vitals of the
monster. 43
CHAPTER VI. THE JOHN BROWN RAID. John Brown. - His
Religious Zeal. - His Hatred to Slavery.- Organi zation of his Army.- Attack on
Harper's Ferry.- His Execution. - John Brown's Companions, Green and Copeland.-
The Executions. THE year 1859 will long be memorable for the bold attempt of
John Brown and his companions to burst the bolted door of the Southern house of
bondage, and lead out the captives by a more effectual way than they had yet
known: an attempt in which, it is true, the little band of heroes dashed
themselves to bloody death, but, at the same time, shook the prison-walls from
summit to foundation, and shot wild alarm into every tyrant-heart in all the
slave-land. What were the plans and purposes of the noble old man is not
precisely known, and per haps will never be; but, whatever they were, there is
reason to believe they had been long maturing,-brooded over silently and
secretly, with much earnest thought, and under a solemn sense of religious duty.
As early as the fall of 1857, he began to organize his band, chiefly from among
the companions of his warfare against the " Border Ruffians" in Kansas. Nine or
ten of these spent the winter of 1857-8 in Iowa, where a Col. Forbes was to have
given them military instruction; but he, having fallen out with Brown, did not
join them, and Aaron D. Stevens, one of the company, took his place. About the
middle of April, 1858, they left Iowa, and went to Chathain, Canada, where, on
the 8th of May, was 44 I
THE JOHN BROWN RAID. held a convention, called by a
written circular, which was sent to such persons only as could be trusted. The
convention was composed-mostly of colored men, a few of whom were from the
States, but the greater part residents in Canada, with no white men but the
organized band already mentioned. A "Provisional Constitution," which Brown had
previously prepared, was adopted; and the members of the convention took an oath
to support it. Its manifest purpose was to insure a perfect organization of all
who should join the expedition, whether free men or insurgent slaves, and to
hold them under such strict control as to restrain them from every act of wanton
or vindictive violence, all waste or needless destruction of life or property,
all indignity or unniecessary severity to prisoners, and all immoral practices;
in short, to keep the meditated movement free from every possibly avoidable evil
ordinarily incident to the armed uprising of a long-oppressed and degraded
people. And let no one who glories in the revolutionary struggles of our fathers
for their freedom deny the right of the American bondsman to imitate their high
example. And those'who rejoice in the deeds of a Wallace or a Tell, a Washington
or a Warren; who cherish with unbounded gratitude the name of Lafayette for
volunteering his aid in behalf of an oppressed people in a desperate crisis, and
at the darkest hour of their fate, -cannot refuse equal merit to this strong,
free, heroic man, who freely consecrated all his powers, and the labors of his
whole life, to the help of the most needy, friendless, and unfortunate of
mankind. The picture of the Good Samaritan will live to all future ages, as the
model of human excellence, for helping one whom he chanced to find in need. 45
THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. John Brown did
more: he went to seek those who were lost that he might save them. On Sunday
night, Oct. 16, John Brown, with twenty followers (five of them colored),
entered the town of Harper's Ferry, in the State of Virginia; captured the
place, making the United-States Armory his headquarters; sent his men in various
directions in search of slaves with which to increase his force. The whole
thing, though premature in its commencement, struck a blow that rang on the
fetters of the enslaved in every Southern State, and caused the oppressor to
tremble for his own safety, as well as for that of the accursed institution.
John Brown's trial, heroism, and execution, an excellent history of which has
been given to the public by Mr. James Redpath, saves me from making any
lengthened statement here. His life and acts are matters of history, which will
live with the language in which it is written. But little can be said of his
companions in the raid on slavery. They were nearly all young men, unknown to
fame, enthusiastic admirers of the old Puritan, entering heartily into all of
his plans, obeying his orders, and dying bravely, with no reproach against their
leader. Of the five colored men,two only were captured alive,Shields Green and
John A. Copeland. The former was a native of South Carolina, having been born in
the city of Charleston in the year 1832. Escaping to the North in 1857, he
resided in Rochester, N.Y., until attracted by the unadorned eloquence and
native magnetism of the hero of Harper's Ferry. The latter was from North
Carolina, and was a mulatto of superior abilities, and a genuine lover of
liberty and justice. The 46
THE JOHN BROWN RAID. following letter, written a short
time before his execution, needs no explanation:. "CHARLESTOWN, VA., Dec. 10,
1859. " MY DEAR BROTHER,-I now take my pen to write you a few lines to let you
know how I am, and in answer to your kind letter of the 5th inst. Dear brother,
I am, it is true, so situated at present as scarcely to know how to commence
writing: not that my mind is filled with fear, or that it has become shattered
in view of my near approach to death; not that I amn terrified by the gallows
which I see staring me in the face, and upon which I am so soon to stand and
suffer death for doing what George Washington, the so-called father of this
great but slaverycursed country, was made a hero for doing while he lived, and
when dead his name was immortalized, and his great and noble deeds in behalf of
freedom taught by parents to their children. And now, brother, for having lent
my aid to a general no less brave, and engaged in a cause no less honorable and
glorious, I am to suffer death. Washington entered the field to fight for the
freedom of the American people,- not for the white man alone, but for both black
and white. Nor were they white men alone who fought for the freedom of this
country. The blood of black men flowed as freely as that of white men. Yes, the
very first blood that was spilt was that of a negro. It was the blood of that
heroic man (though black he was), Crispus Attucks. And some of the very last
blood shed was that of black men. To the truth of this, history, though
prejudiced, is compelled to attest. it is true that black men did an equal share
of the fighting for American independence; and they were assured by the whites
that they should 47
48 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. share equal
benefits for so doing. But, after having performed their part honorably, they
were by the whites most treacherously deceived, - they refusing to fulfil their
part of the contract. But this you know as well as I do; and I will therefore
say no more in reference to the claims which we, as colored men, have on the
American people.... "It was a sense of the wrongs which we have suffered that
prompted the noble but unfortunate Capt. Brown and his associates to attempt to
give fireedom to a small number, at least, of those who are now held by cruel
and unjust laws, and by no less cruel and unjust men. To this freedom they were
entitled by every known principle of justice and humanity; and, for the
enjoyment of it, God created them. And now, dear brother, could I die in a more
noble cause? Could I, brother, die in a manner and for a cause which would
induce true and honest men more to honor me, and the angels more readily to
receive me to their happy home of everlasting joy above? I imagine that I hear
you, and all of you, mother, father, sisters and brothers, say, "No, there is
not a cause for which we, with less sorrow, could see you die!" "Your
affectionate brother, "JOHN A. COPELAND." "The Baltimore Sun" says, " A few
moments before leaving the jail, Copeland said,'If I am dying for freedom, I
could not die for a better cause. I had rather die than be a slave!' A military
officer in charge on the day of the execution says,'I had a position near the
gallows, and carefilly observed all. I can truly say I never witnessed more firm
and unwavering fortitude,
THE JOHN BROWN RAID. more perfect composure, or more
beautiful propriety, than were manifested by young Copeland to the very last.' "
Shields Green behaved with equal heroism, ascending the scaffold with a firm and
unwavering step, and died, as he had lived, a brave man, and expressing to the
last 'his eternal hatred to human bondage, prophesying that slavery would soon
come to a bloody end. 49 $I do
CHAPTER VII. THE FIRST GUN OF THE REBELLION. Nomination
of Fremont.- Nomination of Lincoln.- The Mob Spirit. - Spirit of Slavery. - The
Democracy.- Cotton. - Northern Promises to the Rebels. - Assault on Fort
Sumter.- Call for 75,000 Men. Response of the Colored Men. THE nomination of
John C. Fremont by the Republican party in 1856, and the large vote given him at
the election that autumn, cleared away all doubts, if any existed, as to the
future action of the Federal Government on the spread and power of slavery. The
Democratic party, which had ruled the nation so long and so badly, saw that it
had been weighed, and found wanting; that it must prepare to give up the
Government into the hands of better men. But the party determined to make the
most of Mr. Buchanan's administration, both in the profuse expenditure of money
among themselves, and in getting ready to take the Southern States out of the
Union. Surrounded by the men who believed that the Goveriment was made for them,
and that their mission was to rule the people of the United States, Mr. Buchanan
was nothing more than a tool, -clay in the hands of the potters; and he
permitted them to prepare leisurely for disunion, which culminated, in 1860, in
the nomination of Abraham Lincoln for the presidency. The proslavery Democracy
became furious at the 60
THE FIRST GUN OF THE REBELLION. prospect of losing the
control of the situation, and their hatred of free speech was revived. From the
nominal tion of Mr. Lincoln to his inauguration, mob-law ruled in most of the
cities and large villages. These disgrace ful scenes, the first of which
commenced at the anti slaverymeeting at the Tremont Temple, Boston, was always
gqtten up by members of the Democratic party, who usually passed a series of
resolutions in favor of slavery. New York, Philadelphia, Albany, Buffalo, Troy,
Cincinnati, and Chicago, all followed the example set by Boston. These
demonstrations were caused more by sympathy with the South, and the
long-accustomed subserviency of the Northern people to slaveholding dictation,
than to any real hatred to the negro. During all this time the Abolitionists
were laboring faithfully to widen the gulf between the North and South. Towards
the close of the year 1860, the spirit of compromise began to show itself in
such unmistakable terms as to cause serious apprehension on the part of the
friends of freedom for the future of American liberty. The subdued tone of the
liberal portion of the press, the humiliating offers of Northern political
leaders of compromises, and the numerous cases of fugitive slaves being returned
to their masters, sent a thlrill of fear to all colored men in the land for
their safety, and nearly every train going North found more or less negroes
fleeing to Canada. At the South, the people were in earnest, and would listen to
no proposals whatever in favor of their continuance in the Union. - The vast
wealth realized by the slave-holder had 51
52 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. made him feel
that the South was independent of the rest of the world. Prosperity had made him
giddy. Cotton was not merely king: it was God. Moral considerations were
nothing. The sentiment of right, he argued, would have no influence over
starving operatives; aniid England and France, as well as the Eastern States of
the Union, would stand aghast, and yield to the masterstroke which should
deprive them of the material of their labor. Millions were dependent on it in
all the great centres of civilization; and the ramifications of its power
extended into all ranks of society'and all departments of industry and commerce.
It was only necessary to wave this imperial sceptre over the nations; and all of
them would fall prostrate, and acknowledge the supremacy of the power which
wielded it. Nothing could be more plausible than this delusion. Satan himself;
when about to wage war in heaven, could not have invented one better calculated
to marshal his hosts, andgive promise of success in rebellion against the
authority of the Most Hiigh. But, alas! the supreme error of this anticipation
lay in omitting from the calculation all power of principle. The right still has
authority over the minds of men and in the counsels of nations. Factories may
cease their din; men and women may be thrown out of emnployment; the marts of
commerce may be silent and deserted: but truth and justice still command some
respect among men; and God yet remains the object of their adoration. Drunk with
power, and dazzled with prosperity, mo. nopolizing cotton, and raising it to the
influence of a veritable fetich, the authors of the Rebellion did not admit a
doubt of the success of their attack on the Fed
THE FIRST GUN OF THE REBELLION. eral Government. They
dreamed of perpetuating sla very, though all history shows the decline of the
system as industry, commerce, and knowledge advance. The slave-holders proposed
nothing less than to reverse the currents of humanity, and to make barbarism
flourish in the bosom of civilization. Weak as were the Southern people in point
of num bers and political power, compared with those of the opposite section,
the haughty slave-holders easily persuaded themselves and their dependents that
they could successfully cope in arms with the Northern adversary, whom they
affected to despise for his cowardly and mercenary disposition. Proud and
confident, they indulged the belief that their great political prestige would
continue to serve them among their late party associates in the North, and that
the counsels of the adversary would be distracted, and his power weakened, by
the fatal effects of dissension. The proslavery men in the North are very much
to blame for the encouragement that they gave the rebels b)efore the breaking
out of the war. The Southerners had promises from their Northern friends, that,
in the event of a rebellion, civil war should reign in the free States,- that
men would not be permitted to leave the North to go South to put down their
rebellious brethren. All legitimate revolutions are occasioned by the growth of
society beyond the growth of government; and they will be peaceful or violent
just in proportion as the people and government shall be wise and virtuous or
vicious and ignorant. Such revolutions or reforms are generally of a peaceful
nature in communities in which the government has made provision for the gradual
expansion of its institutions to suit the onward 53
54 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. march of
society. No government is wise in overlook ing, whatever may be the strength of
its own traditions, or however glorious its history, that human institutions
which have been adapted for a barbarous age or state of society will cease to be
adapted for more civilized and intelligent times; and, unless government makes a
provision for the gradual expansion, nothing can prevent a storm, either of an
intellectual or a physical nature. Slavery was always the barbarous institution
of America; and the Rebellion was the result of this incongruity between it and
freedom. The assault on Fort Sumter on the 12th of April, 1861, was the dawn of
a new era for the negro. The proclamation of President Lincoln, calling for the
first 75,000 men to put down the Rebellion, was responded to by the colored
people throughout the country. In Boston, at a public meeting of the blacks, a
large number came forward, put their names to an agreement to form a brigade,
and march at once to the seat of war. A committee waited on the Governor three
days later, and offered the services of these men. His Excellency replied that
he had no power to receive them. This was the first wet blanket thrown over the
negro's enthusiasm. "This is a white man's war," said most of the public
journals. "I will never fight by the side of a nigger," was heard in every
quarter where men were seen in Uncle Sam's uniform. Wherever recruiting offices
were opened, black men offered themselves, and were rejected. Yet these people,
feeling conscious that right would eventually prevail, waited patiently for the
coming time, pledging themselves to go at their country's call, as the following
will show:
THE FIRST GUN OF THE REBELLION. "Resolved, That our
feelings urge us to say to our countrymen that we are ready to stand by and
defend the Government as the equals of its white defenders; to do so with "our
lives, our fortunes, and our sacred honor," for the sake of freedom and as good
citizens; and we ask,you to modify your laws, that we may enlist,- that full
scope may be given to the patriotic feelings burning in the colored man's
breast." - Colored MLen's Meeting, Boston." 55
CHIIAPTER VIII. THE UNION AND SLAVERY BOTH TO BE
PRESERVED. Union Generals offer to suppress Slave Insurrections. -Return of
Slaves coming into our Army. AT the very commencement of the Rebellion, the
proslavery generals in the field took the earliest opportunity of offering their
services, together with those under their commands, to suppress any slave
insurrection that might grow out of the unsettled condition of the country.
Major-Gen. B. F. Butler led off, by tendering his services to Gov. Hicks of
Maryland. About the same time, Major-Genl. Geo. B. McClellan issued the
following, " To the Union Men of Western Virginia," on entering that portion of
the State with his troops: - "The General Government cannot close its ears to
the demands you have made for assistance. I have ordered troops to cross the
river. They come as your friends and brothers, -as enemies only to the armed
rebels who are preying upon you. Your homes, your families, your property, are
safe under our protection. All your rights shall be religiously respected.
Notwithstanding all that has been said by the traitors to induce you to believe
our advent among you will be signalled by an interference with your slaves,
understand one 66
UNION AND SLAVERY BOTH TO BE PRESERVED. 57 thing
clearly: not only will we abstain from all such interference, but we shall, on
the contrary, WITH AN IRON HAND, crush any attempt at insurrection on their
part." Slaves escaping from their masters were promptly returned by the officers
of the army. Gen. W. S. Harney, commanding in Missouri, in responding to the
claims of slave-holders for their blacks, said, "Already, since the commencement
of these unhappy disturbances, slaves have escaped from their owners, and have
sought refuge in the camps of United-States troops from the Northern States, and
commanded by a Northern general. They were carefully sent back to their owners.
The correspondent of "The New-York Herald" gave publicity to the following: "The
guard on the bridge across the Anacostia arrested a negro who attempted to pass
the sentries on the Maryland side. He seemed to feel confident that he was among
friends, for he made no concealment of his character and purpose. He said he had
walked sixty miles, and was going North. He was very much surprised and
disappointed when he was taken into custody, and informed that he would be sent
back to his master. He is now in the guard-house, and answers freely all
questions relating to his weary march. Of course, such an arrest excites much
comment among the men. Nearly all are restive under the thought of acting as
slave-catchers. The Seventy-first made a forced march, and the priva. tions they
endured have been honorably mentioned in the country's history. This poor negro
made a forced march, twice the length in perils often, in fasting,-hurrying
toward the North for his liberty! And the Seventy-first catches him at the end
of his painful journey,- the goal
68 -THE NEGBO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. in sight, -and
sends him back to the master who even now may be in arms against us, or may take
the slave, sell him for a rifle, and use it on his friends in the Seventy-first
New-York Regiment. Humanity speaks louder here than it does in a large city; and
the men who in New York would dismiss the subject with a few words
about'constitutional obligations' are now the loudest in denouncing the abuse of
power which changes a regiment of gentlemen into a regiment of negro-catchers."
At Pensacola, Slemmer did even more, putting in irons filgitives who fled to him
for protection, and returning them to their masters to be scourged to death.
Col. Dimmick, at Fortress Monroe, told the rebel Virginians that he had not an
Abolitionist in his command, and that no molestation of their slave-system would
be suffered. Gen. D. C. Buell, commanding in Tennessee, said, in reply to a
committee of slave-holders demanding the return of their fugitives, "It has come
to my knowledge that slaves sometimes make their way improperly into our lines,
and in some instances they may be enticed there; but I think the number has been
magnified by report. Several applications have been made to me by persons whose
servants have been found in our camps; and, in every instance that I know of,
the master has removed his servant, and taken him away. "I need hardly remind
you that there will always be found some lawless and mischievous persons in
every army; but I assure youthat the mass of this army is law-abiding, and
thatit is neither its disposition nor its policy to violate law or the rights of
individuals in any particular." Yet, while Union soldiers were returning escaped
UNION AND SLAVERY BOTH TO BE PRESERVED. 59 slaves to
rebels, it was a notorious fact that the enemy were using negroes to build
fortifications, drive teams, and raise food for the army. Black hands piled up
the sand-bags, and raised the batteries, which drove Anderson out of Sumter. At
Montgomery, the capital of the confederacy, negroes were being drilled and armed
for military duty.
CHAPTER IX. INTELLIGENT CONTRABANDS. James Lawson. -
His Bravery. - Rescue of his Wife and Children. - He is sent out on Important
Business. - He fights his Way Back. - He is Admired by Gens. Hooker and Sickles.
- Rhett's Servant. - " For aging for Butter and Eggs." I SPENT three weeks at
Liverpool Point, the outpost of Hooker's Division, almost directly opposite
Aquia Creek, waiting patiently for the advance of our left wing to follow up the
army, becoming, if not a participator against the dying struggles of rebeldom,
at least a chronicler of the triumphs in the march of the Union army. During
this time I was the guest of Col. Graham, of Mathias-Point memory, who had
brought over from that place (last November) some thirty valuable chattels. A
part of the camp was assigned to them. They built log huts, and obtained from
the soldiers many comforts, making their quarters equal to any in the camp. They
had friends and relatives. Negroes feel as much sympathy for their friends and
kin'as the whites; and, from November to the present time, many a man in
Virginia has lost a'very likely slave, for the camp contains now upwards of a
hundred fat and healthy negroes, in addition to its original number from Mathias
Point. One of the number deserves more honor than that ac. corded to Toussaint
L'Ouverture in the brilliant lecture delivered by Wendell Phillips. He is
unquestionably 60 0
INTELLIGENT CONTRABANDS. the hero of the Potomac, and
deserves to be placed by the side of his most renowned black brethren. The name
of this negro is James Lawson, born near Hempstead, Virginia, and he belonged to
a Mr. Taylor. He made his escape last December. On hearing his praises spoken by
the captains of the gunboats on the Potomac, I was rather indisposed to admit
the possession of all the qualities they give himrn credit for, and thought
possibly his exploits had been exaggerated. His heroic courage, truthfulness,
and exalted Christian character seemed too romantic for their realization.
However, my doubts on that score were dispelled; and I am a witness of his last
crowning act. Jim, after making his escape from Virginia, shipped on board of"
The Freeborn," flag-gunboat, Lieut. Samuel Magaw commanding. He furnished Capt.
Magaw with much valuable intelligence concerning the rebel movements, and, from
his quiet, every-day behavior, soon won the esteem of the commanding officer.
Capt. Magaw, shortly after Jim's arrival on board " The Freeborn,2' sent him
upon a scouting tour through the rebel fortifications, more to test his
reliability than anything else; and the mission, although fraught with great
danger, was executed by Jim in the most faithful manner. Again Jim was sent into
Virginia, landing at the White House, below Mount Vernon, and going into the
interior for several miles; encountering the fire of picketguards and posted
sentries; returned in safety to the shore; and was brought off in the captain's
gig, under the fire of the rebel musketry. Jim had a wife and four children at
that time still in Virginia. They belonged to the same man as Jim did. He was
anxious to get them; yet it seemed impossible. 61
62 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. One day in
January, Jim came to the captain's room, and asked for permission to be landed
that evening on the Virginia side, as he wished to bring off his family. "Why,
Jim," said Capt. Magaw, "how will you be able to pass the pickets?" "I want to
try, captain: I think I can get'em over safely," meekly replied Jim. " Well, you
have my permission;" and Capt. Magaw ordered one of the gunboats to land Jim
that night on whatever part of the shore he designated, and return for him the
following evening. True to his appointment, Jim was at the spot with his wife
and family, and wa taken on board the gunboat, and brought over to Liverpool
Point, where Col. Graham had given them a log-house to live in, just back of his
own quarters. Jim ran the gauntlet of the sentries unharmed, never taking to the
roads, but keeping in the woods, every foot-path of which, and almost every
tree, he knew from his boyhood up. Several weeks afterwards another
reconnoissance was planned, and Jim sent on it. He returned in safety, and was
highly complimented by Gens. Hooker, Sickles, and the entire flotilla. On
Thursday, week ago, it became necessary to * abajurn~~fmatin Ba the Movements.
\Since then, batteries at Shipping and Cockpit Points had been evacuated, and
their troops moved to Freder icksburg. Jim was the man picked out for the
occasion, by Gen. Sickles and Capt. Magaw. The general came down to Col.
Graham's quarters, about nine in the even ing, and sent for Jim. There were
present, the general, Col. Graham, and myself. Jim came into the colonel's.
"Jim." said the general, "I want you to go over to
INTELLIGENT CONTRABANDS. Virginia to-night, and find
out what forces they have at Aquia Creek and Fredericksburg. If you want any men
to accompany you, pick them out." "I know two men that would like to go," Jim
answered. "Well, get them, and be back as soon as possible." Away went Jim over
to the contraband camp, and, returning almost immediately, brought into our
presence two fevex,y-oki g dariies_.. "Are you all ready? " inquired the
general. "All ready, sir," the trio responded. "Well, here, Jim, you take my
pistol," said Gen. Sickles, unbuckling it from his belt; "and, if you are
successful, I will give you $100." Jim hoped he would be, and, bidding us
good-by, started off for the gunboat "Satellite," Capt. Foster, who landed them
a short distance below the Potomac-Creek Batteries. They were to return early in
the morning, but were unable, from the great distance they went in the interior.
Long before daylight on Saturday morning, the gunboat was lying off at the
appointed place. As the day dawned, Capt. Foster discovered a mounted
picket-guard near the beach, and almost at the same instant saw Jim to the left
of them, in the woods, sighting his gun at the rebel cavalry. He ordered the
"gig" to be manned, and rowed to the shore. The rebels moved along slowly,
thinking to intercept the boat, when Foster gave them a shell, which scattered
them. Jim, with only one of his original companions, and two fresh contrabands,
came on board. Jim had lost the other. He had been challenged by a picket when
some distance in advance of Jim, and the negro, instead of answering the
summons, fired the contents of Sickles's revolver at the 63
64 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. picket. It was
an unfortunate occurrence; for at that time the entire picket-guard rushed out
of a small house near the spot, and fired the contents of their muskets at Jim's
companion, killing him instantly. Jim and the other three hid themselves in a
hollow, near a fence, and, after the pickets gave up pursuit, crept through the
woods to the shore. From the close proximity of the rebel pickets, Jim could not
display a light, which was the signal for Capt. Foster to send a boat. Capt.
Foster, after hearing Jim's story of the shooting of his companion, determined
to avenge his death; so, steaming his vessel close in to the shore, he sighted
his guns for a barn, where the rebel cavalry were hiding behind. He fired two
shells: one went right through the barn, killing four of the rebels, and seven
of their horses. Capt. Foster, seeing the effect of his shot, said to Jim, who
stood by, "Well, Jim, I've avenged the death of poor Cornelius " (the name of
Jim's lost companion). Gen. Hooker has transmitted to the War Department ail
account of Jim's reconnoissance to Fredericksburg, and unites with the army and
navy stationed on the left wing of the Potomac, in the hope that the Government
will present Jim with a fitting recompense for his gallant services.- War
Correspondent of the New- York Times. On Thursday, beyond Charlestown, our
pickets descried a solitary horseman, with a bucket on his arm, jogging soberly
towards them. He proved to be a dark mulatto, of about thirty-five. As he
approached, they ordered a halt. "Where are you from?" "Southern Army, cap'n,"
giving the military salute.
INTELLIGENT CONTRABANDS. "Where are you going?" "Coming
to yous all." "What do you want?" "Protection, boss. You won't send me back,
will you? " "No: come in. Whose servant are you?" "Cap'n Rhett's, of South
Carliny: you's heard of Mr. Barnwell Rhett, editor of' The Charleston Mercury'?
His brother commands a battery." "Hiow did you get away?" "Cap'n gove me fifteen
dollars this morning, and said, 'John, go out, and forage for butter and eggs.'
So you see, boss (with a broad grin), I'se out foraging! I pulled my hat over my
eyes, and jogged along on the cap'n's horse (see the brand S.C. on him?) with
this basket on my arm, right by our guards and pickets. They never challenged me
once. If they had, though, I brought the cap'n's pass." And the new corner
produced this document from his pocket-book, written in pencil, and carefully
folded. I send you the original: "Pass my servant, John, on horseback, anywhere
between Winchester and Martinsburg, in search of butter, &c., &c. " A.
BURNETT RHETT, Capt. Light Artillery, Lee's Battalion." "Are there many negroes
in the rebel corps?" "Heaps, boss." t "Would the most of them come to us if they
could?" "All of them, cap'n. There isn't a little pickanniny so high (waving his
hand two feet from the ground) that wouldn't." "Why did you expect protection?"
"Heard so in Maryland, before the Proclamation." "Where did you hear about the
Proclamation?" 5 65
66 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. "Read it, sir,
in a Richmond paper." "What is it?" "That every slave is to be emancipated on
and aftei the thirteenth day of January. I can't state it, boss." "Something
like it. When did you learn to read?" "In'49, sir. I was head waiter at Mrs.
Nevitt's boarding-house in Savannah, and Miss Walcott, a New York lady, who was
stopping there, taught me." "Does your master know it?" "Capt. Rhett doesn't
know it, sir; but he isn't my master. He thinks I'm free, and hired me at twenty
five dollars a month; but he never paid me any of it. I belong to Mrs. John
Spring. She used to hire me out summers, and have me wait on her every winter,
when she came South. After the war, she couldn't come, and they were going to
sell me for Government because I belonged to a Northerner. Sold a great many
negroes in that way. But I slipped away to the army. Have tried to come.to you
twice before in Maryland, but couldn't pass our pickets." "Were you at
Antietam?" "Yes, boss. Mighty hard battle!" "Who whipped?" "Yous all, massa.
They say you didn't; but I saw it, and know. If you had fought us that next
day,Thursday, - you would have captured our whole army. They say so themselves."
"Who?" " Our officers, sir." "Did you ever hear of old John Brown?" "Hear of
him? Lord bless you, yes, boss: I've read his life, and have it now in my trunk
in Charleston; sent to New York by the steward of' The James Adger,'
INTELLIGENT CONTRABANDS. and got it. I've read it to
heaps of the colored folks. Lord, they think John Brown was almost a god. Just
say you was a friend of his, and any slave will almost kiss your feet, if you
let him. They say, if he was only alive now, he would be king. How it did
frighten the white folks when he raised the insurrection I It was Sunday when we
heard of it. They wouldn't let a negro go into the streets. I was waiter at the
Mills House in Charleston. There was a lady from Massachusetts, who came down to
breakfast that morning at my table.'John,' she says,'I want to see a negro
church; where is the principal one?' Not any open to-day, mistress,' I told
her.'Why not?' Because a Mr. John Brown has raised an insurrection in
Virginny.'' Ah!' she says; 'well, they'd better look out, or they'll get the
white churches shut up in that way some of these days, too!' Mr. Nicholson, one
of the proprietors, was listening from the office to hear what she said. Wasn't
that lady watched after that? I have a History of San Domingo, too, and a Life
of Fred. Douglass, in my trunk, that I got in the same way." "What do the slaves
think about the war?" "Well, boss, they all wish the Yankee army would come. The
white folks tell them all sorts of bad stories about you all; but they don't
believe them." John was taken to Gen. McClellan, to whom he gave all the
information he possesseTdabo sition, numt-)ers, and organization of the re bl
-Is knowledge was tu —iland rvaua%r We;TheorrForad by all the facts we have
learned from other sources. The principal features of it I have already
transmitted to you by telegraph. At the close of the inrterview,he asked
anxiously, - 67
68 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. " General, you
won't send me back, will you?" "Yes," replied the general, with a smile, "I
believe I will." "I hope you won't, general. If you say so, I know I will have
to go; but I come to yous all for protection, and I hope you won't." "Well,
then, I suppose we will not. No, John, you are at liberty to go where you
please. Stay with the army, if you like. No one can ever take you against your
will." "May the Lord bless you, general. I thought you wouldn't drive me out.
You's the best friend I ever had; I shall never forget you till I die." And John
made the salute, re-mounted his horse, and rode back to the rear, his dusky face
almost white with radiance. An hour later, he was on duty as the servant of
Capt. Batchelor, Quartermaster of Couch's Second Division; and I do not believe
there was another heart in our corps so light as his in the unwonted joy of
freedom.New- York Tribune.
CIHAPTER X. PROCLAMATIONS OF FREMONT AND HUNTER. Gen.
Fremont's Proclamation, and its Effect on the Public Mind. - Gen. Hunter's
Proclamation; the Feeling it created. WHILE the country seemed drifting to
destruction, and the Administration without a policy, the heart of every loyal
man was made glad by the appearance of the proclamation of Major-Gen. John C.
Fremont, then in command at the West. The following extract from that document,
which at the time caused so much discussion, will bear insertion here: - "All
persons who shall be taken with arms in their hands within these lines shall be
tried by court martial, and, if found guilty, will be shot. The property, real
and personal, of all persons in the State of Missouri, who shall take up arms
against the United States, or who shall be directly proven to have taken active
part with their enemies in the field, is declared to be confiscated to the
public use, and their slaves, if any they have, are hereby declared free men."
The above was the first official paper issued after the commencement of the war,
that appeared to have the ring of the right kind of mettle. But while the public
mind was being agitated upon its probable effect upon the Rebellion, a gloom was
thrown over the whole conmunity by the President's removal of Gen. Fremont, and
the annulling of the proclamation. This act of Mr. Lin 69
70 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. coin gave
unintentional "aid and my, and was another retrograde of crushing out the
Rebellion. Gen. Fremont, before the arri letter, had given freedom to a nu
cordance with his proclamation. ] be seen in the following deed of n " Whereas,
Thomas L. Snead, o of St. Louis, State of Missouri, hae part with the enemies of
the Unit ent insurrectionary movement ag of the United States; now, ther
Fremont, Major-Geieral comman partment of the Army of the Unit of law, and the
power vested in me general, declare Hiram Reed, here or labor by Thomas L.
Snead, to discharged from the bonds of set right and authority to have, use
labor or service as to him may see accountability whatever to said any one to
claim by, through, or 1 "And this deed of manumissi and treated by all persons,
and i] as the full and complete evidence Hiram Reed. "In testimony whereof, this
acs ters of the Western Department United States, in the city of St. Li on this
twelfth day of September, and sixty.one, as is evidenced by hereto affixed by my
order. "J. C. FREMONT, I' Major-General Commanding."
PROCLAMATIONS OF FREMONT AND HUNTER. "Done at the
office of the Provost-Marshal, in the city of St. Louis, the twelfth day of
September, A.D. eigh. teen hundred and sixty-one, at nine o'clock in the evening
of said day. "Witness my hand and seal of office hereto affixed. J. McKINSTRY, "
Brigadier-General, Provost-Marshal." The agitation in the public mind on account
of the proclamation a nd its annulment, great as it was, was soon surpassed by
one still more bold and sweeping from Major-Gen. David Hunter, in the following
language, issued from his headquarters, at Hilton Head, S.C., on the 9th of May:
" HEADQUARTERS DEPARTMENT OF THE SOUTH, HILTON HEAD, S.C., May 9, 1862. "GENERAL
ORDERS, NO. 11: "The three States of Georgia, Florida, and South Carolina,
comprising the Military Department of the South, having deliberately declared
themselves no longer under the protection of the United States of America, and
having taken up arms against the said United States, it became a military
necessity to declare them under martial law. This was accordingly done on the
25th day of April, 1862. Slavery and martial law in a free country are
altogether itlcompatible. The persons in these three States, Georgia, Florida,
and South Carolina, heretofore held as slaves, are therefore declared forever
free. "DAVID HUNTER, jor-General Commanding. "[Official.] "ED. W. SMITH, Acting
Assistant Adjutant-General." But, before Mr. Lincoln was officially informed of
the 71 "In
72 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. issuing of the
above order, he made haste to annul it in the terms following: "That neither
Gen. Hunter nor any other commander or person has been authorized by the
Government of the United States to make proclamation declaring the slaves of any
State free; and that the supposed proclamation now in question, whether genuine
or false, is altogether void, so far as respects such declaration. "I further
make known, that, whether it be competent for me, as Commander-in-Chief of the
Army and Navy, to declare the slaves of any State or States free, and whether at
any time or in any case it shall have become a necessity indispensable to the
maintenance of the Government to exercise such supposed power, are questions
which, under my responsibility, I reserve to myself, and which I cannot feel
justified in leaving to the decision of commanders in the field." These words of
the President were hailed with cheers by the proslavery press of the North, and
carried comfort t o t he hearts of the rebels; although the Chief-Magistrate did
not intend either. However, before the President's proclamation reached
Carolina, Gen. Hunter was furnishing slaves with free papers, of which the
succeeding is a copy: - "DEED OF EMANCIPATION. "It having been proven, to the
entire satisfaction of the general commanding the Department of the South, that
the bearer, named -, heretofore held in involuntary servitude, has been directly
employed to aid and assist those in rebellion against the United States. of
America;
PROCLAMATIONS OF FREMONT AND HUNTER. "Now, be it known
to all, that, agreeably to the laws, I declare the said person free, and forever
absolved from all claims to his services. Both he and his wife and children have
fuill right to go North, East, or West, as they may decide. "Given under my
hand, at the Headquarters of the Department of the South, this nineteenth day of
April, 1862. "D. HUNTER, "Major-General Commanding." The words, "forever free,"
sounded like a charm upon the ears of the oppressed, and seemed to give hopes of
a policy that would put down the Rebellion, and leave the people untrammelled
with slavery. "God's law of compensation worketh sure, So we may know the right
shall aye endure! 'Forever free!' God! how the pulse doth bound At the high,
glorious, Heaven-prompted sound That greets our ears from Carolina's shore!
'Forever free!' and slavery is no more! Ere time the hunter followed up the
slave; But now a Hunter, noble, true, and brave, Proclaims the right, to each
who draws a breath, To lift himself from out a living death, And plant his feet
on Freedom's happy soil, Content to take her wages for his toil, And look to
God, the author of his days, For food and raiment, sounding forth His praise."
Deep indeed was the impression left upon the public ~ mind by the orders of both
Fremont and Hunter; and they hastened the policy which the President eventually
adopted, to the great gratification of the friends of free dom everywhere. 73
CHAPTER XI. HEROISM OF NEGROES ON THE HIGH SEAS.
Heiroism of Negroes. - William Tillman re-captures "The S. G. Waring." -George
Green. -Robert Small captures the Steamer "Planter." - Admiral Dupont's Opinion
on Negro Patriotism. IN the month of June, 1861, the schooner "S. J. Waring,"
from New York, bound to South America, was captured on the passage by the rebel
privateer "Jeff. Davis," a prize-crew put on board, consisting of a captain,
mate, and four seamen; and the vessel set sail for the port of Charleston, S.C.
Three of the original crew were retained on board, a German as steersman, a
Yankee who was put in irons, and a black man named William Tillman, the steward
and cook of the schooner. The latter was put to work at his usual business, and
told that he was henceforth the property of the Confederate States, and would be
sold, on his arrival at Charleston, as a slave. Night comes on; darkness covers
the sea; the vessel is gliding. swiftly towards the South; the rebels, one after
another, retire to their berths; the hour of midnight approaches; all is silent
in the cabin; the captain is asleep; the mate, who has charge of the watch,
takes his brandy toddy, and reclines upon the quarter-deck. The negro thinks of
home and all its endearments: he sees in the dim future chains and slavery. He
resolves, and determines to put the resolution into 74
HEROISM OF NEGROES ON THE HIGH SEAS. practice upon the
instant. Armed with a heavy club, he proceeds to the captain's room. He strikes
the fatal blow: he feels the pulse, and all is still. He next goes to the
adjoining room: another blow is struck, and the black man is master of the
cabin. Cautiously he ascends to the deck, strikes the mate: the officer is
wounded but not killed. He draws his revolver, and calls for help. The crew are
aroused: they are hastening to aid their com mander. The negro repeats his blows
with the heavy club: the rebel falls dead at Tillman's feet. The African seizes
the revolver, drives the crew below deck, orders the release of the Yankee, puts
the enemy in irons, and proclaims himself master of the vessel. "The Waring's"
head is turned towards New York, with the stars and stripes flying, a fair wind,
and she rap. idly retraces her steps. A storm comes up: more men are needed to
work the ship.-Tillman orders the rebels to be unchained, and brought on deck.
The command is obeyed; and they are put to work, but informed, that, if they
show any disobedience, they will be shot down. Five days more, and "The S. J.
Waring" arrives in the port of New York, under the command of William Till man,
the negro patriot. "The New-YQrk Tribune" said of this event, - ~ To this
colored man was the nation indebted for the first vindication of its honor on
the sea." Another pub lic journal spoke of that achievement alone as an offset
to the defeat of the Federal arms at Bull Run. Un stinted praise from all
parties, even those who are usualy awkward in any other vernacular than derision
of tlhe colored man, has been awarded to this colored man. At Barnum's Museum he
was the centre of attractive gaze to daily increasing thousands. Pictorials vied
with each 75 I
THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. other in
portraying his features, and in graphic delineations of the scene on board the
brig; while, in one of them, Tillman has been sketched as an embodiment of black
action on the sea, in contrast with some delinquent Federal officer as white
inaction on land. The Federal Government awarded to Tillman the sum of six
thousand dollars as prize-money for the capture of the schooner. All loyal
journals joined in praise of the heroic act; and, even when the news reached
England, the negro's bravery was applauded. A few weeks later, and the same
rebel privateer captured the schooner "Enchantress," bound from Boston to St.
Jago, while off Nantucket Shoals. A prize-crew was put on board, and, as in the
case of "The Waring," retaining the colored steward; and the vessel set sail for
a Southern port. When off Cape Hatteras, she was overtaken by the Federal
gunboat "Albatross," Capt. Prentice. On speaking her, and demanding where from
and whence bound, she replied, "Boston, for St. Jago."' At this moment thIe
niegro rushed from the galley, where the pirates had secreted him, and jumped
into the sea, exclaiming, "They are a privateer crew from The' Jeff. Davis,' and
bound for Charleston!" The nqgro was picked up, and taken on board "The
Albatross." The prize was ordered to heave to, which she did. Lieut. Neville
jumped aboard of her, and ordered the pirates into the boats, and to pull for
"The Albatross," where they were secured in ironils. "The Enchantress" was then
taken in tow by "The Albatross," and arrived in Hampton Roads. On the morning of
the 13th of May, 1862, the rebel gunboat" Planter" was captured by her colored
crew, while lying in the port of Charleston, S.C., and brought out, and
delivered over to our squadron then blockading the place. The 76
HEROISM OF NEGROES ON THE HIGH SEAS. following is the
dispatch from Corn. Dupont to the Secre. tary of War, announcing the fact: - "
U. S. STEAMSHIIP AUGUSTA, off Charleston, May 13, 1862. "Sir, -I have the honor
to inform you that therebL armed gunboat'Planter' was brought out to us this
morning from Charleston by eight contrabands, and delivered up to the squadron.
Five colored women and three children are also on board. She was the armed
despatch and transportation steamer attached to the engineer department at
Charleston, under Brig.-Gen. Ripley. At four in the morning, in the absence of
the captain who was on shore, she left her wharf close to the government office
and head-quarters, with the Palmetto and confederate flags flying, and passed
the successive forts, saluting as usual, by blowing the steam-whistle. After
getting beyond the range of the last gun, they hauled down the rebel flags, and
hoisted a white one. "The Onward" was the inside ship of the blockading squadron
in the main channel, and was preparing to fire when her commander made out the
white flag. "The armament of the steamer is a thirty-two pounder, on pivot, and
a fine twenty-four-pound howitzer. She has, besides, on her deck, four other
guns, one seven-inch, rifled, which were to be taken on the following morning to
a new fort on the middle ground. One of the four belonged to Fort Sumter, and
had been struck, in the rebel attack, on the muzzle. Robert Small, the intelli.
gent slave, and pilot of the boat, who performed this bold feat so skilfully, is
a superior man to any who have come into our lines, intelligent as many of them
have been. His information has been most interesting, and 77
78 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. portions of it
of the utmost importance. The steamer is quite a valuable acquisition to the
squadron by her good machinery and very light draught. The bringing out of this
steamer would have done credit to any one. I do not know whether, in the view of
the Government, the vessel will be considered a prize; but, if so, I
respectfully submit to the Department the claims of the man Small and his
associates. Very respectfully, your obedient servant, "S. F. DUPONT,
"Flag-Officer Commanding." The New-York "Commercial Advertiser" said of the
capture, "We are forced to confess that this is a heroic act, and that the
negroes deserve great praise. Small is a middle-aged negro, and his features
betray nothing of the firmness of character he displayed. He is said to be one
of the most skilful pilots of Charleston, and to have a thorough knowledge of
all the ports and inlets of South Carolina." A bill was introduced in Congress
to give the prize to Robert Small and his companions; and, while it was under
consideration, the "New-York Tribune" made the following timely remarks: "If we
must still remember with humiliation that the Confederate flag yet waves where
our national colors were struck, we should be all the more prompt to recognize
the merit that has put in our possession the first trophy from Fort Sumter. And
the country should feel doubly humbled if there is not magnanimity enough to
acknowledge a gallant action, because it was the head of a black man that
conceived, and the hand of a black man that executed it. It would better,
indeed, become us to remember that no small
HIEROISM OF NEGROES ON THE HIGH SEAS. share of the
naval glory of the war belongs to the race which we have forbidden to fight for
us; that one negro has captured a vessel from a Southern privateer, and another
has brought away from under the very guns of the enemy, where no fleet of ours
has yet dared to venture, a prize whose possession a commodore thinks worthy to
be announced in a special despatch." The bill was taken up, passed both branches
of Congress, and Robert Small, together with his associates, received justice at
the hands of the American Government. The "New-York Herald" gave the following
account of the capture: "One of the most daring and heroic adventures since the
war commenced was undertaken and successfully accomplished by a party of negroes
in Charleston on Monday night last. Nine colored men, comprising the pilot,
engineers, and crew of the rebel gunboat'Planter,' took the vessel under their
exclusive control, passed the batteries and forts in Charleston Harbor, hoisted
the white flag, ran out to the blockading squadron, and thence to Port Royal,
via St. Helena Sound and Bread River, reaching the flagship' Wabash' shortly
after ten o'clock last evening. " The Planter' is just such a vessel as is
needed to navigate the shallow waters between Hilton Head and the adjacent
islands, and will prove almost invaluable to the Government. It is proposed, I
hear, by the commodore, to recommend the appropriation of $20,000 as a reward to
the plucky Africans who have distinguished themselves by this gallant service,
$5,000 to be given' to the pilot, and the remainder to be divided among his
companions. " The Planter' is a high-pressure, side-wheel steamer, 79
80 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. one hundred and
forty feet in length, and about fifty feet beam, and draws about five feet of
water. She was built in Charleston, was formerly used as a cotton boat, and is
capable of carrying about 1,400 bales. On the organization of the Confederate
navy, she was transformed into a gunboat, and was the most valuable war-vessel
the Confederates had at Charleston. Her armament consisted of one
thirty-two-poulnd rifle-gun forward, and a twenty-four-pound howitzer aft.
Besides, she had on board, wheni she came into the harbor, one seven-inch
rifle-gun, one eight-inch columbiad, one eight-inch howitzer, one long
thirty-two pounder, and about two hundred rounds of ammunition, which had been
consigned to Fort Ripley, and which would have been delivered at that
fortification on Tuesday had not the designs of the rebel authorities been
frustrated. She was commanded by Capt. Relay, of the Confederate Navy, all the
other employees of the vessel, excepting the first and second mates, being
persons of color. "Robert Small, with whom I had a brief interview at Gep.
Benham's headquarters this morning, is an intelligent negro, born in Charleston,
and employed for many years as a pilot in and about that harbor. He entered upon
his duties on board' The Planter' some six weeks since, and, as he told me,
adopted the idea of running the vessel to sea from a joke which one of his
companions perpetrated. He immediately cautioned the crew against alluding to
the matter in any way on board the boat; but asked them, if they wanted to talk
it up in sober earnestness, to meet at his house, where they would devise and
determine upon a plan to place themselves under the protection of the Stars and
Stripes, instead of the stars and bars. Various plans were pro
HEROISM OF NEGROES ON THE HIGH SEAS. posed; but finally
the whole arrangement of the escape was left to the discretion and sagacity of
Robert, his companions promising to obey him, and be ready at a moment's notice
to accompany him. For three days he kept the provisions of the party secreted in
the hold, awaiting an opportunity to slip away. At length, on Monday evening,
the white officers of the vessel went on shore to spend the night, intending to
start on the following morning for Fort Ripley, and to be absent from the city
for some days. The families of the contrabands were notified, and came
stealthily on board. At about three o'clock, the fires were lit under the
boilers, and the vessel steamed quietly away down the harbor. The tide was
against her, and Fort Sumter was not reached till broad daylight. However, the
boat passed directly under its walls, giving the usual signal- two long pulls
and a jerk at the whistle-cord- as she passed the sentinel. "Once out of range
of the rebel guns, the white flag was raised, and' The Planter' steamed directly
for the blockading steamer'Augusta.' Capt. Parrott, of the latter vessel, as you
muay imagine, received them cordially, heard their report, placed Acting-Master
Watson, of his ship, in charge of' The Planter,' and sent the Con. federate
gunboat and crew forward to Commodore Dupont." 6 81
CHAPTER XII. GENERAL BUTLER AT NEW ORLEANS. Recognition
of Negro Soldiers with Officers of their own Color. - Society in New Orleans. -
The Inhuman Master. - Justice. - Change of Opinion.- The Free Colored
Population. WHEN Major-Gen. Butler found himself in possession of New Orleans,
he was soon satisfied of the fact that there were but few loyalists amongst the
whites, while the Union feeling of the colored people was apparent from the hour
of his landing; they having immediately called u pon the commander, and, through
a committee, offered their services in behalf of the Federal cause. Their offer
was accepted, as the following will show:: "HEADQUARTERS DEPARTMENT OF THE GULF,
NEW ORLEANS, Aug. 22, 1862. "GENERAL ORDER, No. 63: "Whereas, on the
twenty-third day of April, in the year eighteen hundred and sixty-one, at a
public meeting of the free colored population of the city of New Orleans, a
military organization, known as the'Native Guards' (colored), had its existence,
which military organization was duly and legally enrolled as a part of the
military of the State, its officers being commissioned by Thomas O. 82
GENERAL BUTLER AT NEW ORLEANS. Moore, Governor, and
Commander-in-Chief of the Militia, of the State of Louisiana, in the form
following, that is to say: "' THE STATE OF LouisIANA. [Seal of the State.] "'By
Thomas Overton Moore, Governor of the State of Louisiana, and
Commander-inr-Chief of the Militia thereof. "' In the name and by the authority
of the State of Louisiana: "' Know ye that, having been duly and legally elected
Captain of the "Native Guards "(colored), First Division of the Militia of
Louisiana, to serve for the term of the war, "' I do hereby appoint and
commission him Captain as aforesaid, to take rank as such, from the second day
of May, 1861. "'He is, therefore, carefully and diligently to discharge the
duties of his office, by doing and performing all manner of things thereto
belonging. And I do strictly charge and require- all officers, non-commissioned
officers, and privates under his command to be obedient to his orders as
Captain; and he is to observe and follow such orders and directions, from time
to time, as he shall receive from me, or the future Governor of the State of
Louisiana, or other superior officers, according to the Rules and Articles of
War, and in conformity to law. "' In testimony whereof, I have caused these
letters to be made patent, and the seal of the State to be hereunto annexed. "'
Given under my hand, at the city of Baton Rouge, 83
84 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. on the second
day of May, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-two. "'
(Signed) "'THOMAS O. MOORE. "'By the Governor. "' P. D. HARDY, Secretary of
State." [INDORSED.] "'I, Maurice Grivot, Adjutant and Inspector-General of the
State of Louisiana, do hereby certify that , named in the within commission,
did, on the twenty-second day of May, in the year 1861, deposit in my office his
written acceptance of the office to which he is commissioned, and his oath of
office taken according to law. "' M. GRIVOT, "' Adjutant and Inspector-General
La.' "And whereas such military organization elicited praise and respect, and
was complimented in general orders for its patriotism and loyalty, and was
ordered to continue during the war, in the words following: "' HEADQUARTERS
LOUISIANA MILITIA, "' Adjutant-General's Office, March 24, 1862. "'ORDER NO.
426: "'I. The Governor and Commander-in-Chief, relying implicitly upon the
loyalty of the free colored population of the city and State, for the protection
of their homes, their property, and for Southern rights, from the pollution of a
ruthless invader, and believing that the military organization which existed
prior to the 15th February, 1862, and elicited praise and respect for the
patriotic motives which prompted it, should exist for and during the war, calls
upon them to maintain their
GENERAL BUTLER AT NEW ORLEANS. organization, and hold
themse orders as may be transmitted to "'II. The colonel command delay to
Major-Gen. Lewis, corn "'By order of "' THOS. O. MOORE, Governor. "' M. GRIVOT,
Adjutant-General.' "And whereas said military organization, by thp same order,
was directed to report to Major-Gen. Lewis for service, but did not leave the
city of New Orleans when he did: "Now, therefore, the commanding-general,
believing that a large portion of this military force of the State of Louisiana
are willing to take service in the volunteer forces of the United States, and be
enrolled and organized to'defend their homes from ruthless invaders;' to protect
their wives and children and kindred from wrongs and outrages; to shield their
property from being seized by bad men; and to defend the flag of their native
country as their fathers did under Jackson at Chalmette against Packingham and
his myrmidons, carrying the black flag of'beauty and booty'; "Appreciating their
motives, relying upon their' wellknown loyalty and patriotism,' and with' praise
and respect' for these brave men,it is ordered that all the members of
the'Native Guards' aforesaid, and all other free colored citizens recognized by
the first and late governor and authorities of the State of Louisiana as a
portion of the militia of the State, who shall enlist in the volunteer service
of the United States, shall be duly organized by the appointment of proper
officers, and accepted, paid, equipped, armed, and rationed as are other
volunteer corps of the United States, subject to the ap 85
86 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. proval of the
President of the United States. All such persons are required to report
themselves at the Touro Charity Building, Front Levee Street, New Orleans, where
proper officers will muster them into the service of the United States. "By
command of "Major-Gen. BUTLER. ':-R. S. DAVIS, Captain and A.A.A.G." The
commanding general soon discovered that he was amongst a different people from
those with whom he had been accustomed to associate. New Orleans, however,
though captured was not subdued. The city had been for years the headquarters
and focus of all Southern rowdyism. An immense crowd of "loafers," many without
regular occupation or means, infested the streets, controlled the ballot-boxes,
nominated the judges, selected the police, and affected to rule every one except
a few immensely wealthy planters, who governied them by money. These rowdies had
gradually dissolved society, till New Orleans had become the most blood-thirsty
city in the world; a city where every man went armed, where a sharp word was
invariably answered by a stab, and where the average of murdered men taken to
one hospital was three a day. The mob were bitter advocates of slavery, held all
Yankees in abhorrence, and guided by the astute brain of Pierre Souln, whilom
ambassador to Spain, resolved to contest with Gen. Butler the right to control
the city. They might as well have contested it with Bonaparte. The first order
issued by the general indicated a policy from which he never swerved. The mob
had surrounded the St. Charles Hotel, threatening an attack on the building,
then the general's headquarters; and Gen. Williams,
GENERAL BUTLER AT NEW ORLEANS. commanding the troops
round it, reported that he would be unable to control the mob. "Gen. Butler, in
his serenest manner, replied,' Give my compliments to Gen. Williams, and tell
him, if he finds he cannot control the mob, to open upon them with artillery.' "
The mob did that day endeavor to seize Judge Summers, the Recorder; and he was
only saved by the determined courage of Lieut. Kinsman, in command of an armed
party. From this moment the general assumed the attitude he never abandoned,
that of master of New Orleans, making his own will the law. He at first retained
the municipal organization; but, finding the officials incurably hostile, he
sent them to Fort Lafayette, and thenceforward ruled alone, feeding the people,
re-establishing trade, maintaining public order, and seeing that negroes
obtained some reasonable measure of security. Their evidenice was admitted,
"Louisiana having, when she went out of the Union, taken her black code with
her; " the whipping-house was abolished, and all forms of torture sternly
prohibited. The following interesting narrative, given by a correspondent of
"The Atlantic Monthly," will show, to some extent, the scenes which Gen. Butler
had to pass through in connection with slavery: "One Sunday morning, late last
summer, as I came down to the breakfast-room, I was surprised to find a large
number of persons assembled in the library. "When I reached the door, a member
of the staff took me by the arm, and drew me into a room toward a young and
delicate mulatto girl, who was standing against the opposite wall, with the
meek, patient bearing of her race, so expressive of the system of repression to
which they have been so long subjected. 87
88 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. "Drawing down
the border of her dress, my conduc tor showed me a sight more revolting than I
trust ever again to behold. "The poor girl's back was flayed until the quivering
flesh resembled a fresh beefsteak scorched on a gridiron. With a cold chill
creeping through my veins, I turned away from the sickening spectacle, and, for
an explanation of the affair, scanned the various persons about the room. " In
the centre of the group, at his writing-table, sat the general. His head rested
on his hand, and he was evidently endeavoring to fix his attention upon the
remarks of a tall, swarthy-looking man who stood opposite, and who, I soon
discovered, was the owner of the girl, and was attempting a defence of the foul
outrage he had committed upon the unresisting and helpless person of his
unfortunate victim, who stood smarting, but silent, under the dreadful pain
inflicted by the brutal lash. "By the side of the slave-holder stood our
adjutant-gen Oral, his face livid with almost irrepressible rage, and his fists
tight clenched, as if to violently restrain himself from visiting the guilty
wretch with summary and retributive justice. Disposed about the room, in various
attitudes, but all exhibiting in their countenances the same mingling of horror
and indignation, were other members of the staff; while near the door stood
three or four house-servants, who were witnesses in the case. "To the charge of
having administered the inhuman castigation, Landry (the owner of the girl)
pleaded guilty, but urged, in extenuation, that the girl had dared to make an
effort for that freedom which her instincts, drawn from the veins of her abuser,
hlad taught her was the God-given right of all who possess the germ
GENERAL BUTLER AT NEW ORLEANS. of immortality, no
matter what the color of the casket in which it is hidden. "I say' drawn from
the veins of her abuser,' because she declared she was his daughter; and every
one in the room, looking upon the man and woman confronting each other,
confessed that the resemblance justified the assertion. "'At the conclusion of
all the evidence in the case, the general continued in the same position as
before, and remained for some time apparently lost in abstraction. 1 shall never
forget the singular expression on his face. "I had been accustomed to see him in
a storm of passion at any instance of oppression or flagrant injustice; but, on
this occasion, he was too deeply affected to obtain relief in the usual way.
"His whole air was one of dejection, almost listlessness; his indignation too
intense, and his anger too stern, to find expression, even in his countenance.
After sitting in the mood which I have described at such length, the general
again turned to the prisoner, and said, in a quiet, subdued tone of voice, "'
Mr. Landry, I dare not trust myself to decide to-day what punishment would be
meet for your offence; for I am in that state of mind that I fear I might exceed
the strict demands of justice. I shall therefore place you under guard for the
present, until I conclude upon your sentence.' "A few days after, a number of
influential citizens having represented to the general that Mr. Landry was not
only a high-toned gentleman,' but a person of unusual 'AMIABILITY' of character,
and was consequently entitled to no small degree of leniency, he answered, that,
in consideration of the prisoner's' high-toned' character, and 89
90 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. especially of
his'amiability,' of which he had seen so remarkable a proof, he had determined
to meet their views; and therefore ordered that Landry give a deed of
manumission to the girl, and pay a fine of five hundred dollars, to be placed in
the hands of a trustee for her benefit." It was scenes like the above that
changed Gen. Butler's views upon the question of slavery; for it cannot be
denied, that, during the first few weeks of his command in New Orleans, he had a
controversy with Gen. Phelps, owing to the latter's real antislavery feelings.
Soon after his arrival, Gen. Butler gave orders that all negroes not needed for
service should be removed from the camps. The city was sealed against their
escape. Even secession masters were assured that their property, if not
employed, should be returned. It is said that pledges of reimbursement for loss
of labor were made to such. Gen. Phelps planted himself on the side of the
slave; would not exile them from his camp; branded as cruel the policy that
harbored, and then drove out the slave to the inhuman revenge that awaited him.
Yet the latter part of Gen. Butler's reign compensated for his earlier faults.
It must be remembered, that, when he landed in New Orleans, he was fresh from
Washington, where the jails were filled with fugitive slaves, awaiting the claim
of their masters; where the return of the escaped bondman was considered a
military duty. Then how could he be expected to do better? The stream cannot
rise higher than the spring. His removal from the Department of the Gulf, on
account of the crushing blows which he gave the "peculiar institution," at once
endeared him to the hearts of the friends of impartial freedom throughout the
land.
GENERAL BUTLER AT NEW ORLEANS. The following imitation
of Leigh HIunt's celebrated poem is not out of place here: "AB OU BEN BUTLER.
"Abou Ben Butler (may his tribe increase! ) Awoke one night down by the old
Balize, And saw, outside the comfort of his room, Making it warmer for the
gathering gloom, A black man, shivering in the Winter's cold. Exceeding courage
made Ben Butler bold; And to the presence in the dark he said, "What wantest
thou?" The figure raised its head, And, with a look made of all sad accord,
Answered, "The men who'll serve the purpose of the Lord." "And am I one?" said
Butler. "Nay, not so," Replied the black man. Butler spoke more low, But cheerly
still, and said, "As I am Ben, You'll not have cause to tell me that again!" The
figure bowed and vanished. The next night It came once more, environed strong in
light, And showed the names whom love of Freedom blessed; And, lo! Ben Butler's
name led all the rest."- Boston Transcript. It is probably well known that the
free colored population of New Orleans, in intelligence, public spirit, and
material wealth, surpass those of the same class in any other city of the Union.
Many of these gentlemen have been highly educated, have travelled extensively in
this and foreign countries, speak and read the French, Spanish, and English
languages fluently, and in the Exchange Rooms, or at the Stock Boards, wield an
influence at any time fully equal to the same number of white capitalists.
Before the war, they represented in that city alone fifteen millions of
property, and were heavily taxed to support the schools of the State, but were
not allowed to claim the least benefit therefrom. These gentlemen, representing
so much intelligence, 91 0
92 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. culture, and
wealth, and who would, notwithstanding the fact that they all have negro blood
in their veins, adorn any circle of society in the North, who would be taken
upon Broadway for educated and wealthy Cuban planters, rather than free negroes,
although many of them have themselves held slaves, have always been loyal to the
Union; and, when New Orleans seemed in danger of being re-captured by the rebels
under Gen. Magruder, these colored men rose en masse, closed their offices and
stores, armed and organized themselves into six regiments, and for six weeks
abandoned their business, and stood ready to fight for the defence of New
Orleans, while, at the same time, not a single white regiment from the original
white inhabitants was raised.
CHAPTER XIII. THE DISTRICT OF COLUMBIA FREE.
Emancipation in the District.- Comments of the Press. - The Good Result. -
Recognition of Hayti and Liberia. - The Slave- trader Gordon. FOR many years
previous to the Rebellion, efforts had been made tow induce Congress to abolish
slavery in the District of Columbia, without success. The "negropens" which
adorned that portion of the national domain had long made Americans feel ashamed
of the capital of their country; because it was well known that those pens were
more or less connected with the American slave-trade, which, in its cruelty, was
as bad as that of the African slave-trade, if not worse. It was expected, even
by the democracy, that one of the first acts of the Republicans on coming into
office would be the emancipation of the slaves of the District; and therefore no
one was surprised at its being brought forward in the earliest part of Mr.
Lincoln's administration. The bill was introduced into the Senate by Hon. Henry
Wilson of Massachusetts. Its discussion caused considerable excitement among
slave-holders, who used every means to prevent its passage. Nevertheless, after
going through the Senate, it passed the House on the 11th of April, 1862, by a
large majority, and soon received the sanction of the President. The Copperhead
press howled over the doings of Congress, and appeared to 93
94 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. see the fate of
the institution in this act. The "Louisville Journal" said, "The President,
contrary to our most earnest hopes, has approved the bill for the abolition of
slavery in the District of Columbia. "We need hardly say that the President's
reasons for approving the bill are not, in our opinion, such as should have
governed him at this extraordinary juncture of the national history. They are
not to us sufficient reasons. On the contrary, we think they weigh as nothing
compared with the grave reasons in the opposite scale. "The enemies of-the
country will no doubt attempt so to use tile act by representing it as the firs
step towards the abolition of slavery inll the States; but this representation,
if made, will be a very gross misrepresentation. The Republicans, as a body, our
readers know full well, always declared that Congress had the constitutional
power to abolish slavery in the District of Columbia, and that Congress ought to
exercise the power. They, however, have always declared, with the same
unanimity, that Congress does not possess the constitutional power to interfere
with slavery in the States. And they now declare so with especial distinctness
and solemnity. "We, of course, except from the scope of the remarks we have now
made such abolitionists as Sumner and his scattered followers in Congress. With
the exception of these few raving zealots, of whom most Republicans are heartily
ashamed, tile men who voted to abolish slavery in the District of Columbia avow
themselves as resolutely opposed to interfering with slavery in the States as
the men who voted against the measure are known to be. Their avowals are
distinct and emphatic. "We hope that the majority in Congress are at length
THE DISTRICT OF COLUMBIA FREE. through with such
tricks, and will henceforth leave in peace the myrtle of party eye-sores, while
they split the oak ofthe Rebellion." However, the predictions and hopes of the
"Journal" were not to avail any thing for the slavemongers. The Rebellion had
sounded the death-knell of the crime of crimes. Too many brave men had already
fallen by the hands of the upholders of the barbarous system to have it stop
there. The God of liberty had proclaimed that "In this, the District where my
Temple stands, I burst indignant every captive's bands; Here in my home my
glorious work begin; Then blush no more each day to see this sin. Thus finding
room to freely breathe and stand, I'll stretch my sceptre over all the land,
Until, unfettered, leaps the waiting slave, And echoes back the blessings of the
brave." The "Press," Forney's paper, spoke thus, a few days after slavery had
died in the District: "The emancipation of slaves in the District of Columbia
was one of the most suggestive events of the age. It was an example and an
illustration. The great idea of the past century, the idea which had associated
and identified itself with our institutions, was at last tried by a practical
test. Good results came from it; none of the evils dreaded and prophesied have
been manifested. It was a simple measure of legislative policy, and was
established amid great opposition and feeling. Yet it was succeeded by no
agitation, no outbreaks of popular prejudice. The District of Columbia is now a
free Territory by the easy operation of a statute law,- by what enemies of the
measure called forcible emancipation; and yet the District of Columbia is as
pleasant and as 95
96 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. prosperous as
at any period of its history. T'here has been no negro saturnalia, no violent
outbreak of social disorder, no attempt to invade those barriers of social
distinction that must forever exist between the African and Anglo-Saxon [?]. It
was said that property would depreciate; that there would be excesses and
violences; that the negro would become insolent and unbearable; that the city of
Washington would become a desolated metropolis; that niiegro labor would become
valueless; that hundreds of the emancipated negroes would flock to the Northern
States. We have seen no such results as yet; we know that nothing of tihe kind
is anticipated. We have yet to hear of the first emancipated negro coming to
Philadelphia. Labor moves on in its accustomed way, with the usual supply and
demand. We do not think a white woman has been insulted by an emancipated negro;
we are confident that no emancipated negro has sought the hand of any fair
damsel of mar riageable age and condition. " Society is the same in Maryland and
Kentucky. In accomplishing emancipation in the District of Columbia, we have
shown the timid that their fears were but of the imagination, the mere
prejudices of education. Slavery has been the cancer of the Southern social
system. We employ an old metaphor, perhaps, but it is a forcible and appropriate
illustration. It rooted itself into the body of Southern society, attacking the
glands, terminating in an ill-conditioned and deep disease, and causing .the
republic excruciating pain. It became schirrous and indurated. It brought
disaster and grief upon them, and the sorest of evils upon us. It brought us
blood and civil war, ruined commerce and desolated fields,blockaded ports, and
rivers that swarm with gunboats instead of iner.
THE DISTRICT OF COLUMBIA FREE. chant vessels. It was
tolerated as a necessary evil, until its extent and virulence made it incumbent
upon us to terminate it as such, or to be terminated by it. The champions of
this institution, not content with submitting to the toleration and protection
of our great Northern free community, have made it the pretext for aggression
and insult, and by their own acts are accomplishing its downfall. The
emancipation of slavery in the District of Columbia was the necessary and
natural result of the Southern Rebellion. It is but the beginning of the results
the Rebellion must surely bring. The wedge has only entered the log, and heavy
blows are falling upon it day by day." Great was the rejoicing in Washington and
throughou t th e Free States; for every one saw "the end from the beginning."
Our own Whittier strung his harp anew, and sung, "I knew that truth would crush
the lie, Somehow, sometime the end would be; Yet scarcely dared I hope to see
The triumph with my mortal eye. But now I see it. In the sun A free flag floats
from yonder dome, And at the nation's hearth and home The justice long delayed
is done." With the abolition of slavery in the District of Columbia, commenced a
new era at our country's capital. The representatives of the Governments of
Hayti and Liberia had both long knocked in vain to bie admitted with the
representatives of other nations. The slave power had always succeeded in
keeping them out. But a change had now come over the dreams of the people, 7 97
I
98 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. and Congress
was but acting up to this new light in passing tile following bill "Be it
enacted by the Senate and House of Representatives of the United States of
America in Congress assembled, That the President of the United States be, and
he hereby is, authorized, by and with the consent of the Senate, to appoint
diplomatic representatives of the United States to the republics of Hlayti and
Liberia, respectively. Each of the said representatives so appointed shall be
accredited as commissioner and consul general, and shall receive, out of any
money in the treasury not otherwise appropriated, the compensation of
commissioners provided for by the Act of Congress approved August 18, 1856:
Provided that the compensation of the representative at Liberia shall not exceed
$4,000." The above bill was before the Senate some time, and elicited much
discussion, and an able speech was made by Hon. Charles Sumner in favor of the
recognition of the independence of Hayti and Liberia. To use his own expressive
words, " Slavery in the national capital is now abolished: it remains that this
other triumph shall be achieved. Nothing i-but the sway of a slave-holding
despotism on the floor of Congress, hitherto, has prevented the adoption of this
righteous measure; and now that that despotism has been exorcised, no
time.should be lost by Congress to see it carried into immediate execution. All
other civilized nations have ceased to make complexion a badge of superiority or
inferiority in the matter of nationality; and we should make haste, therefore,
to repair the injury we have done, as a repub: lic, in refusing to recognize
Liberian and Haytian independence." Even after all that had passed, the African
slave-trade
THE DISTRICT OF COLUMBIA was still being carried on
between the Southern States and Africa. Ships were fitted out in Northern ports
for the purpose of carrying on this infernal traffic. And, although it was
prohibited by an act of Congress, none had ever been convicted for dealing in
slaves. The new order of things was to give these traffickers a trial, and test
the power by which they had so long dealt in the bodies and souls of men whom
they had stolen from their native land. One Nathaniel Gordon was already in
prison in New York, and his trial was fast approach ing: it came, and he was
convicted of piracy in the United States District Court in the city of New York;
the piracy consisting in having fitted out a slaver, and shipped nine hundred
Africans at Congo River, with a view to selling them as slaves. The same man had
been tried for the same offence before; but the jury failed to agree, and he
accordingly escaped punishment for the time. Every effort was made which the
ingenuity of able lawyers could invent, or the power of money could enforce, to
save this miscreant from the gallows; but all in vain: for President Lincoln
utterly refused to interfere in any way whatever, and Gordon was executed on the
7th of February. This blow appeared to give more offence to the (ommercial
Copperheads than even the emancipation of the slaves in the District of
Columbia; for it struck an effectual blow at a very lucrative branch of
commerce, in which the New Yorkers were largely interested. Thus it will be seen
that the nation was steadily moving on to the goal of freedom. ''-'-'"
CHAPTER XIV. THE BLACK BRIGADE OF CINCINNATI. The
Great Fright. - Cruel Treatment of the Colored People by the Police. - Bill
Homer and his Roughs.- Military Training. - Col. Dickson. - The Work.- Mustering
Out. - The Thanks. HATRED to the negro is characteristic of the people of
Cincinnati; more so, probably, than any other city in t he West. Mlobs i n which
the colored citizens have been the victims have more than once occurred in that
place, to the utter disgrace of its white inhabitants, mobs resulting often in
the loss of life, and always in the destruction of property. The raid of John
Morgan in the month of July, 1862, and, soon after, the defeat of t h e Union
troops in Kentucky, had given warning of impending danger. This feeling of fear
culminated on the first of September, in the mayor of Cincinnati calling on the
people to organize and prepare for the defence of the city, in the following
proclamation: "MAYOR'S OFFICE, City of Cincinnoti. "In accordance with a
resolution passed by the City Council of Cincinnati on the first instant, I
hereby request that all business of every kind or character be suspended at ten
o'clock of this day, and that all persons, employers and employees, assemble in
their respective wards, at the usual places of voting, and then and there
organize themselves in such manner as may 100
THE BLACK BRIGADE OF CINCINNATI. be thought best for
the defence of the city. Every man, of every age, be he citizen or alien, who
lives under the protection of our laws, is expected to take part in the
organization. "Witness my hand, and the corporate seal of the city of
Cincinnati, this second day of September, A.D. 1862. "GEORGE HATCH, Mayor." At
two o'clock on the morning of the same day, the mayor issued another
proclamation, notifying the citizens that the police force would perform the
duty of a provost-guard, under the direction of Gen. Wallace. The mayor's
proclamation, under ordinary circumstances, would be explicit enough.
"Every.man, of every age, be he citizen or alien," surely meant the colored
people. A number thought themselves included in the call; but, remembering the
ill-will excited by former offers for home defence, they feared to come forward
for enrolment. The proclamation ordered the people to assemble "in the
respective wards, at the usual places of voting." The colored people had no
places of voting. Added to this, George Hatch was the same mayor who had broken
up the movement for home defence, before mentioned. Seeking to test the matter,
a policeman was approached, as he strutted in his new dignity of provostguard.
To the question, humbly, almost tremblingly, put, - Does_ the mayor desire
colored men to report fbor service in the city's defence?" he replied, "You know
d d well he does'nt mean you. Niggers ain't citizens." —"But he calls on all,
citizens and aliens. If he does not mean all, he should not say so." -" The
mayor knows as well as you do what to write, and all he wants is for you niggers
to keep quiet." This was at 101
102 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. nine o'clock
on the morning of the second. The military authorities had determined, however,
to impress the colored men for work upon the fortifications. The privilege of
volunteering, extended to others, was to be denied to them. Permission to
volunteer would implly some freedom, some dignity, some independent manhood. For
this the commanding officer is alone chargeable. If the guard appointed to the
duty of collecting the colored people had gone to their houses, and notified
them to report for duty on the fortifications, the order would have been
cheerfully obeyed. But the brutal ruffians who composed the regular and special
police took every opportunity to inflict abuse and insult upon the men whom they
arrested. The special police was entirely composed of that class of the
population, which, only a month before, had combined to massacre the colored
population, and were only prevented from committing great excesses by the fact
that John Morgan, with his rough riders, had galloped to within forty miles of
the river, when the respectable citizens, fearing that the disloyal element
within might combine with the raiders without, and give the city over to
pillage, called a meeting on'Change, and demanded that the riot be stopped. The
special police was, in fact, composed of a class too cowardly or too traitorous
to aid, honestly and manfully, in the defence of the city. They went from house
to house, followed by a gang of rude, foul-mouthed boys. Closets, cellars, and
garrets were searched; bayonets were thrust into beds and bedding; old and
young, sick and well, were dragged out, and, amidst shouts and jeers, marched
like felons to the pen on Plum Street, opposite the Cathedral. No time was given
to prepare for camplife; in most cases no information was given of the pur.
THE BLACK BRIGADE OF CINCINNATI. pose for which the
men were impressed. The only answers to questions were curses, and a brutal
"Come along now; you will find out time enough." Had the city been captured by
the Confederates, the colored people would have suffered no more than they did
at the hands of these defenders. Tuesday night, Sept. 2, was a sad night to the
colored people of Cincinnati. The greater part of the male population had been
dragged from home, across the river, but where, and for what, none could tell.
The captain of these conscripting squads was one William Homer, and in him
organized ruffianism had its fitting head. He exhibited the brutal malignity of
his nature in a continued series of petty tyrannies. Among the first squads
marched into the yard was one which ha:t to wait several hours before being
ordered across the river. Seeking to make themselves as comfortable a,s
possible, they had collected blocks of wood, and piled up bricks, upon which
they seated themselves on the shaded side of the yard. Coming into the yard, he
ordered all to rise, marched them to another part, then issued the order, "D-n
you, squat." Turning to the guard, he added, "Shoot the first one who rises."
Reaching the opposite side of the river, the same squad were marched from the
sidewalk into the middle of the dusty road, and again the order, "D-n you,
squat," and the command to shoot the first one who should rise. The drill of
this guard of white ruffians was unique, and not set down in either Scott or
Hardee. Calling up his men, he would address them thus: "Now, you fellows, hold
up your heads. Pat, hold your musket straight; don't put your tongue out so far;
keep your eyes open: I believe you are drunk. Now, then, I want you 103
104 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. fellows to go
out of this pen, and bring all the niggers you can catch. Don't come back here
without niggers: if you do, you shall not have a bit of grog. Now be off, you
shabby cusses, and come back in forty minutes, and bring me niggers; that's what
I want." This barbarous and inhuman treatment of the colored citizens of
Cincinnati continued for four days, without a single word of remonstrance,
except from the "Gazette." Finally, Col. Dickson, a humane man and gentlemanly
officer, was appointed to the command of the "Black Brigade," and brutality gave
way to kind treatment. The men were permitted to return to their homes, to allay
the fears of their families, and to prepare themselves the better for camp-life.
The police were relieved of provost-guard duty, and on Friday morning more men
reported for duty than had been dragged together by the police. Many had hidden
too securely to be found; others had escaped to the country. These now came
forward to aid in the city's defence. With augmented numbers, and glowing with
enthusiasm, the Black Brigade marched to their duty. Receiving the treatment of
men, they were ready for any thing. Being in line of march,.they were presented
with a national flag by Capt. Lupton, who accompanied it with the following
address: - "I have the kind permission of your commandant, Col. Dickson, to hand
you, without formal speech or presentation, this national flag, - my sole object
to encourage and cheer you on to duty. On its broad folds is inscribed,'THE
BLACK BRIGADE OF CINCINNATI.' I am confident, that, in your hands, it will not
be dishonored. "The duty of the hour is work, - hard, severe labor on the
fortifications of the city. In the emergency upon
THE BLACK BRIGADE OF CINCINNATI. us, the highest and
the lowest alike owe this duty. Let it be cheerfully undertaken. Hie is no man
who now, in defence of home and fireside, shirks duty. "A flag is the emblem of
sovereignty, a symbol and guaranty of protection. Every nation and people are
proud of the flag of their country. England, for a thousand years, boasts her
Red Flag and Cross of St. George; France glories in her Tri-color and Imperial
Eagle; ours, the' Star-spangled Banner,' far more beautiful than they, -this
dear old flag! - the sun in heaven never looked down on so proud a banner of
beauty and glory. Men of the Black Brigade, rally around it! Assert your
manhood; be loyal to duty; be obedient, hopeful, patient. Slavery will soon die;
the slave-holders' rebellion, accursed of God and man, will shortly and
miserably perish. There will then be, through all the coming ages, in very
truth, a land of the free, -one country, one flag, one destiny. "I charge you,
men of the Black Brigade of Cincinnati, remember that for you, and for me, and
for your children, and your children's children, there is but one flag, as there
is but one Bible, and one GOD, the Father of us all." For nearly three weeks the
Black Brigade labored upon the fortifications, their services beginning, as we
have seen, Sept. 2, and terminating Sept. 20. When the brigade was mustered out,
the commander thanked them in the following eloquent terms: - "SOLDIERS OF THE
BLACK BRIGADE! You have finished the work assigned to you upon the
fortifications for the defence of the city. You are now to be discharged. You
have labored faithfully; you have made miles of military roads, miles of
rifle-pits, felled hundreds 106
106 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. of acres of
the largest and loftiest forest trees, built magazines and forts. The hills
across yonder river will be a perpetual monument of your labors. You have, in no
spirit of bravado, in no defiance of established prejudice, but in submission to
it, intimated to me your willingness to defend with your lives the
fortifications your hands have built. Organized companies of nimen of your race
have tendered their services to aid in thle defence of the city. In obedience to
the policy of the Government, the authorities have denied you this privilege. In
the department of labor permitted, you have, however, rendered a willing and
cheerful service. Nor has your zeal been dampened by the cruel treatment
received. The citizens, of both sexes, have encouraged you with their smiles and
words of approbation; the soldiers have welcomed you as co-laborers in the same
great cause. But a portion of the police, ruffians in character, early learning
that your services were accepted, and seeking to deprive you of the honor of
voluntary labor, before opportunity was given you to proceed to the field,
rudely seized you in the streets, in your places of business, in your homes,
everywhere, hurried you into filthy pens, thence across the river to the
fortifications, not permitting you to make any preparation for camp-life. You
have borne this with the accustomed patience of your race; and when, under more
favorable auspices, you have received only the protection due to a common
humanity, you have labored cheerfully and effectively. "Go to your homes with
the consciousness of having performed your duty, -of deserving, if you do not
receive, the protection of the law, and bearing with you the gratitude and
respect of all honorable men. You have learned to suffer and to wait; but, in
your hours of
THE BLACK BRIGADE OF CINCINNATI. adversity, remember
that the same God who has numbered the hairs of our heads, who watches over even
the fate of a sparrow, is the God of your race as well as mine. The sweat-blood
which the nation is now shedding at every pore is an awful warning of how
fearful a thing it is to oppress the humblest being." A letter ill " The
Tribune," dated Cincinnati, Sept. 7, giving an account of the enthusiasm of the
people in rallying for the city's defence, says, " While all have done well, the
negroes, as a class, must bear away the palm. When martial law was declared, a
few prominent colored men tendered their services in any capacity desired. As
soon as it became known that they would be accepted, Mayor Hatch's police
commenced arresting them-everywhere, dragging them away from their houses and
places of business without a moment's notice, shutting them up in negro-pens,
and subjecting them to the grossest abuse and indignity. Mr. Hatch is charged
with secession proclivities. During the recent riots against the negroes, the
animus of his police was entirely hostile to them, and many outrages were
committed upon that helpless and unoffending class. On this occasion, the same
course was pursued. No opportunity was afforded the negro to volunteer; but they
were treated as public enemies. They were taken over the river, ostensibly to
work upon the fortification; but were scattered, detailed as cooks for white
regiments, some of them half-starved, and all so much abused that it finally
caused a great outcry. When Gen. Wallace's attention was called to the matter,
he requested Judge William M. Dickson, a prominent citizen, who is related by
marriage to President Lincoln, to take the whole matter in charge. Judge Dickson
undertook the thankless 107
108 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION task:
organized the negroes into two regiments of three hundred each, made the proper
provision for their comfort, and set them at work upon the trenches. They have
accomplished more than any other six hundred of the whole eight thousand men
upon the fortifications. Their work has been entirely voluntary. Judge Dickson
informed them at the outset that all could go home who chose; that it must be
entirely a labor of love with them. Only one man of the whole number has availed
himself of the privilege; the rest have all worked cheer. fully and efficiently.
One of the regiments is officered by white captains, the other by negroes. The
latter proved so decidedly superior that both regiments will hereafter be
commanded by officers of their own race. They are not only working, but
drilling; and they already go through some of the simpler military movements
very creditably. Wherever they appear, they are cheered by our troops. Last
night, one of the colored regiments, coming off duty for twenty-four hours, was
halted in front of headquarters, at the Burnet House, front faced, and gave
three rousing cheers for Gen. Wallace, and three more for Judge Dickson."
CHAPTER XV. PROCLAMATION OF FREEDOM. Emancipation
Proclamation. - Copperhead View of It.-" Abraham Spare the South." - The
Contrabands Rejoicing. - The Songs. - En thusiasm. -Faith in God. - Negro Wit. -
" Forever Free." ON the 22d of September, 1862, President Lincoln sent forth his
proclamation, warning the rebel States that he would proclaim emancipation to
their slaves if such States did not return to the Union before the first day of
the following January. Loud were the denunciations of the copperheads of the
country; and all the stale arguments against negro emancipation which had teen
used in the West Indies thirty years before, and since then in our country, were
newly vamped, and put forward to frighten the President and his Cabinet. The
toleration of a great social wrong in any country is ever accompanied by
blindness of vision, hardness of heart, and cowardice of mind, as well as moral
deterioration and industrial impoverishment. Hence, whenever an earnest attempt
is made for the removal of the wrong, those without eyes noisily declare that
they see clearly that nothing but disastrous consequences will follow; those who
are dead to all sensibility profess to be shocked beyond measure in
contemplating the terrible scenes that must result from the change; and those
who have no faith in justice are thrown into spasms at the mention of its
impartial administration. For a whole generation, covering the period of the
antislavery struggle in this 109
110 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. country, have
they not incessantly raised their senseless clamors and indignant outcries
against the simplest claim of bleeding humanity to be released from its
tortures, as though it were a proposition to destroy all order, inaugurate
universal ruin, and "let chaos come again?" "The proclamation won't reach the
slaves," said one. "They wont heed it," said another. "This proclamation is an
invitation to the blacks to murder their masters," remarked a Boston copperhead
newspaper. "The slaves will fight for their masters," said the same journal, the
following day. "It will destroy the Union."-" It is harmless and impotent." -"
It will excite slave insurrection." -" The slaves will never hear of it." -" It
will excite the South to desperation." -" The rebels will laugh it to scorn."
Delegation after delegation waited on the President, and urged a postponement of
emancipation. The Kentucky Congressional delegation did all in their power to
put back the glorious event. Conservative old-line Whigs and backsliding
antislavery men were afraid to witness the coming day. "Abraham, spare the
South, Touch not a single slave, Nor e'en by word of mouth Disturb the thing, we
crave. 'Twas our forefathers' hand That slavery begot: There, Abraham, let it
stand; Thine acts shall harm it not," cried thousands who called at the White
House. Washington. Alexandria, and Georgetown were crowded with "contrabands;"
and hundreds wrere forwarded to the Sea Islands, to be occupied in cultivating
the deserted plantations. As the day drew near, reports were circu
PROCLAMATION OF FREEDOM. lated that the President
would re-call the pledge. The friends of th e negro were frightened; the negro
himself trembled for fear that the cause would be lost. The blacks in all.the
Southern departments were behaving well, as if to deepen the already good
impression made by them on the Government officials. Rejoicing meetings were
advertised at the Tremont Temple, Boston, Cooper Institute, New York, and the
largest hall in Philadelphia, and in nearly every city and large town in the
north. Great prepa ration was made at the "Contraband Camp," in the District of
Columbia. At the latter place, they met on the last night in December, 1 862, in
the camp, and waited patiently for the coming day, when they should become free.
The fore part of the night was spent in singing and prayer, the following being
sung several times: - "Oh, go down, Moses, Way down into Egypt's land; Tell king
Pharaoh To let my people go.' Oh, Pharaoh said he would go cross, Let my people
go. But Pharaoh and his host was lost, 'Let my people go. Chorus- Oh, go down,
Moses, &c. O Moses, stretch your hands across, Let my people go. And don't
get lost in the wilderness, Let my people go. Chorus- Oh, go down, Moses,
&c. You may hinder me here, but you can't up there, Let my people go. He
sits in heaven, and answers prayer, Let my people go. Chorus - Oh, go down,
Moses, &c." ill
112 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. After this an
old man struck up, in a clear and power. ful voice, "I am a free man now: Jesus
Christ has made me free!" the company gradually joining in; and, before the
close, the whole assemblage was singing in chorus. It was quite evident, through
the exercises of the day and night, that the negroes regard the condition of the
Israelites in Egypt as typical of their own condition in slavery; and the
allusions to Moses, Pharaoh, the Egyp. tian task-masters, and the unhappy
condition of the captive Israelites, were continuous; and any reference to the
triumphant escape of the Israelites across the Red Sea, and the destruction of
their pursuing masters, was certain to bring out a strong "Amen!" An old colored
preacher, who displays many of the most marked peculiarities of his race,
calling himself "John de Baptis," and known as such by his companions, from his
habit of always taking his text, as he expresses it, from the "regulations ob de
2d chapter of Matthew, 'And in those days came John de Baptis,"' came forward,
and, taking his usual text, went on to show the necessity of following good
advice, and rebuked his hearers for being more lawless than they were in Dixie.
Then came another contraband brother, who said, "Onst, the time was dat I cried
all night. What's de matter? What's de matter? Matter enough. De nex mornin' my
child was to be sold, an' she was sold; an' I neber spec to see her no more till
de day ob judgment. Now, no more dat! no more dat! no more dat! Wid my hands
agin my breast I was gwine to my work, when de overseer used to whip me along.
Now, no more dat! no more dat! no more dat! When I tink what de Lord's done for
us, all' brot us thro' de trubbles, I feel dat I ought go inter his service.
We'se free now, bress de x
PROCLAMATION OF FREEDOM. Lord! (Amens! were
vociferated all over the building.) Dey can't sell my wife an' child any more,
bress de Lord I (Glory, glory! from the audience.) No more dat! no more dat! no
more dat, nowI (Glory!) Presurdund Lincurm hav shot de gate! Dat's what de
matter!" and there was a prolonged response of Amens! A woman on her knees
exclaimed at the top of her voice, - "If de Debbie do not ketch Jeff. Davis, dat
infernal retch, An roast and frigazee dat rebble, Wat is de use ob any Debbie?"
"Amen! amen! amen!" cried many voices. At this juncture of the meeting, an
intelligent contra. band broke out in the following strain: "The first of
January next, eighteen sixty-three, So says the Proclamation, - the slaves will
all be free I To every kindly heart'twill be the day of jubilee; For the bond
shall all go free! John Brown, the dauntless hero, with joy is looking on; From
his home among the angels he sees the coming dawn; Then up with Freedom's
banners, and hail the glorious morn When the slaves shall all go free! We've
made a strike for liberty; the Lord is on our side; And Christ, the friend of
bondmen, shall ever be our guide; And soon the cry will ring, throughout this
glorious land so wide, 'Let the bondmen all go free!' No more from crushed and
bleeding hearts we hear the broken sigh; No more from brothers bound in chains
we'll hear the pleading cry; For the happy day, the glorious day, is coming by
and by, When the slaves shall all go free! We're bound to make our glorious flag
the banner of the free, The first Of January next, eighteen sixty-three; Of
every loyal Northern heart the glad cry then shall be, ' Let the bondmen all go
free I' 8 113
THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. 'No COMPROMISE
WITH SLAVERY!' we hear the cheering sound, The road to peace and happiness' Old
Abe' at last has found: With earnest hearts and willing hands to stand by him
we're bound, While he sets the bondmen fiee! The morning light is breaking: we
see its cheering ray,The light of Truth and Justice, that can never fade away;
And soon the light will brighten to a great and glorious day, When the slaves
shall all go free! And when we on the' other side' do all together stand, As
children of one family we'll clasp the friendly hand: We'll be a band of
brothers in that brighter, better land, Where the bond shall all be firee!"
After several others had spoken, George Payne, another contraband, made a few
sensible remarks, somewhat in these words: " Friends, don't you see de han' of
God in dis? Haven't we a right to rejoice? You all know you couldn't have such a
meetin' as dis down in Dixie! Dat you all knows. 1 have a right to rejoice; an'
so have you; for we shall be free in jus' about five minutes. Dat's a fact. I
shall rejoice that God has placed Mr. Lincum in de president's chair, and dat he
wouldn't let de rebels make peace until after dis new year. De Lord has heard de
groans of de people, and has come down to deliver! You all knows dat in Dixie
you worked' de day long, an' never got no satisfacshun. But here, what you make
is yourn. I've worked six months; and what I've made is mine! Let me tell you,
though, don't be too free! De lazy man can't go to heaven. You must be honest,
an' work, an' show dat you is fit to be free; an' de Lord will bless you an'
Abrum Lincumn. Amen!" A small black man, with a rather cracking voice, appearing
by his jestures to be inwardly on fire, began jumping, and singing the
following: 114
PROCLAMATION OF FREEDOM. "Massa gone, missy too; Cry!
niggers, cry! Tink I'll see de bressed Norf, 'Fore de day I die. Hi! hi! Yankee
shot'im; Now I tink de debbil's got'im." The whole company then joined in
singing the annexed song, which made the welkin ring, and was heard far beyond
the camp. "Oh! we all longed for freedom, Oh! we all longed for freedom, Oh! we
all longed for freedom, Ah! we prayed to be free; Yes, we prayed to be free, Oh!
we prayed to be free, Though the day was long in coming, Though the day was long
in coming, Though the day was long in coming, That we so longed to see, That we
so longed to see, That we so longed to see, Though the day was long in coming
That we so longed to see. II. But bless the great Jehovah, But bless the great
Jehovah, But bless the great Jehovah, At last the glad day's come, At last the
glad day's come, At last the glad day's come. By fire and sword he brought us,
By fire and sword he brought us, By fire and sword he brought us, From slavery
into freedom, From slavery into freedom, From slavery into Freedom; By fire and
sword he brought us From slavery into freedom. 115 I.
116 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION, III. We'll
bless the great Redeemer, We'll bless the great Redeemer, We'll bless the great
Redeemer, And glorify his name, And glorify his name, And glorify his name, And
all who helped to bring us, And all who helped to bring us, And all who helped
to bring us From sorrow, grief, and shame, From sorrow, grief, and shame,
From-sorrow, grief, and shame, And all who helped to bring us From sorrow,
grief, and shame. IV. And blessed be Abraham Lincoln, And blessed be Abraham
Lincoln, And blessed be Abraham Lincoln, And the Union army too, And the Union
army too. May the choicest of earth's blessings, May the choicest of earth's
blessings, May the choicest of earth's blessings, Their pathways ever strew,
Their pathways ever strew, Their pathways ever strew! May the choicest of
earth's blessings Their pathways ever strew! V. We'll strive to learn our duty,
We'll strive to learn our duty, We'll strive to learn our duty, That all our
friends may see, That all our friends may see, That all our friends may see,
Though so long oppressed in bondage, Though so long oppressed in bondage, Though
so long oppressed in bondage,
PROCLAMATION OF FREEDOM. We were worthy to be free, We
were worthy to be free, We were worthy to be free: Though so long oppressed in
bondage, We were worthy to be free." Just before midnight, Dr. Nichols requested
all pres ent to kneel, and to silently invoke the blessing of the Almighty. The
silence was almost deadly when the clock announced the new year; and Dr.
Nichlols said, "Men and women (for you are this day to be declared free, and I
can address you as men and women), I wish you a happy new year!" An eloquent
prayer was then offered by an aged negro; after which, all rose, and joined in
singing their version of " Glory! glory! hallelujah!" shaking each other by the
hand, and indulging in joy. ous demonstrations. They then promenaded the
grounds, singing hymns, and finally serenaded the superintendent, in whose honor
a sable improvisatore carolled forth an original ode, the chorus of which was,
"Free forever I Forever free!" "Ring, ring! 0 Bell of Freedom, ring! And to the
ears of bondmen bring Thy sweet and freeman-thrilling tone. On Autumn's blast,
from zone to zone, The joyful tidings go proclaim, In Liberty's hallowed name:
Emancipation to the slave, The rights which his Creator gave, To live with
chains asunder riven, To live free as the birds of heaven, To live free as the
air he breathes, Entirely free from galling greaves; The right to act, to know,
to feel, That bands of iron and links of steel Were never wrought to chain the
mind, Nor human flesh in bondage bind; 117
118 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. That Heaven,
in its generous plan, Gave like and equal rights to man. Go send thy notes from
shore to shore, Above the deep-voiced cannon's roar; Go send Emancipation's peal
Where clashes North with Southern steel, And nerve the Southern bondmen now To
rise and strike the final blow, To lay Oppression's minions low. Oh! rouse the
mind and nerve the arm To brave the blast and face the storm; And, ere the
war-cloud passes by, We'll have a land of liberty. Our God has said, "Let there
be light Where Error palls the land with night." Then send forth now, 0
Freedom's bell, Foul Slavery's last and fatal knell! Oh! speed the tidings o'er
the land, That tells that stern Oppression's hand Has yielded to the power of
Right: That Wrong is weak, that Truth is might I Then Union shall again return,
And Freedom's fires shall brightly burn; And PEACE and joY, sweet guests, shall
come, And dwell in every heart and home." "Free forever! Forever free! " No pen
can fitly portray the scene that followed this announcement. Every heart seemed
to leap for joy: some were singing, some praying, somne weeping, some danc,ing,
husbands embracing wives, friends shaking hands, and appearing to feel that the
Day of Jubilee had come. A sister broke out in the following strain, which was
heartily joined in by the vast assembly: "Go down, Abraham, away down in Dixie's
land, Tell Jeff. Davis to let my people go.
PROCLAMATION OF FREEDOM. Our bitter tasks are ended,
all our unpaid labor done; Our galling chains are broken, and our onward march
begun: Go down, Abraham, away down in Dixie's land, Tell Jeff. Davis to let my
people go. Down in the house of bondage we have watched and waited long; The
oppressor's heel was heavy, the oppressor's arm was strong: Go down, Abraham,
away down in Dixie's land, Tell Jeff. Davis to let my people go. Not vainly have
we waited through the long and darkened years; Not vain the patient
watching,'mid our sweat and blood and tears: Go down, Abraham, away down in
Dixie's land, Tell Jeff. Davis to let my people go. Now God is with Grant, and
he'll surely whip Lee; For the Proclamation says that the niggers must be free:
Go down, Abraham, away down in Dixie's land, Tell Jeff. Davis to let my people
go." Thus ended the last night of',avery in l;he contraband camp at Washington.
The morning of Jan. 1, 1863, was anxiously looked for by the friends of freedom
throughout the United States; and, during the entire day, the telegraph offices
in the various places were beset by crowds, waiting to hear the news from the
Nation's capital. Late in the day the following proclamation made its
appearance: - WASHINGTON, Jan. 1, 1863. - I Abraham Lincoln, President of the
United States of America, do issue this my Proclamation: — Whereas, On the 22d
day of September, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and
sixty-three, a proclamation was issued by the President of the United States,
containing, among other things, the following, to wit: " That, on the first day
of January, in the year of our 119
120 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. Lord one
thousand eight hundred and sixty-three, all persons held as slaves within any
State or any designated part of a State, the people whereof shall then be in
rebellion against the United States, shall be then, henceforward, and forever,
free; and the Executive government of the United States, including the military
and niaval force thereof, will recognize and maintain the freedom of such
persons, and will do no act or acts to repress such persons, or any of them, in
any effort they may make for their actual freedom; that the Executive will, on
the first day of January aforesaid, by proclamation, designate the States and
parts of States, if' any, in which the people therein respectively shall then be
in rebellion against the United States; and the fact that any State or people
thereof shall on that day be in good faith represented in the Congress of the
United States by members chosen thereto, at elections wherein a majority of the
qualified voters of such States shall have participated, shall, in the absence
of strong countervailing testimony, be deemed conclusive evidence that such
State and the people thereof are not then in rebellion against the United
States. "Now, therefore, I, Abraham Lincoln, President of the United States, by
virtue of the power in me vested, as Commander-in-Chief of the Army and Navy of
the United States in times of actual rebellion against the authorities and
Government of the United States, and as a fit and necessary war measure for
suppressing this rebellion, do on this, the first day of January, in the year of
our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-three, and in accordance with my
purpose so to do, publicly proclaimed for the full period of one hundred days
from the date of the first above-mentioned order, do designate as
PROCLAMATION OF FREEDOM. the States and parts of
States wherein the people there of; respectively, are this day in rebellion
against the United States. The following, to wit: "Arkansas, Texas, Louisiana,
Mississippi, Alabama, Florida, Georgia, South Carolina, North Carolina, and
Virginia. "Louisiana (except the parishes of St. Bernard, Placquemines,
Jefferson, St. John, St. Charles, St. James, Ascension, Assumption, Terre Bonne,
Lafourche, St. Mary, St. Martin, and Orleans, including the city of New
Orleans), Mississippi, Alabama, Florida, Georgia, South Carolina, North
Carolina, and Virginia, except the fortyeight counties designated as West
Virginia, and also the counties of Berkley, Accomac, Northampton, Elizabeth
City, York, Princess Anne, and Norfolk. including the cities of Norfolk and
Portsmouth, which excepted parts are for the present left precisely as if this
proclamation ,vere not made. "And by virtue of the power, for the purpose
aforesaid, I do order and declare that all persons held as slaves within said
designated States and parts of States are, and henceforward shall be, FREE; and
the Executive Government of the United States, including the military and naval
authorities thereof; will recognize and maintain the freedom of such persons.
"And I hereby enjoin upon the people so declared to be free to abstain from all
violence, unless in necessary self-defence; and I recommend to them, that, in
all cases where allowed, they labor faithfully for reasonable wages. "And I
further declare and make known, that such persons, if in suitable condition,
will be received into tlhe armed service of the United States, to garrison
forts, positions, stations, and other places, and to man vessels of 121
122 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. all sorts in
said service. And upon this, sincerely be lieved to be an act of justice
warranted by the Consti. tution, and upon military necessity, I invoke the
considerate judgment of mankind and the gracious favor of Almighty God. "In
witness whereof, I have hereunto set my hand, and caused the seal of the United
States to be affixed. "Done at the city of Washington, this first day of
January, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-three, and
of the independence of the United States of America the eighty-seventh. "ABRAHAM
LINCOLN. "By the President. " WM. H. SEWARD, Secretary of State." This was the
beginning of a new era: the word had gone forth, and a policy was adopted. "The
deed is done. Millions have yearned To see the spear of Freedom cast: The dragon
writhed and roared and burned; You've smote him full and square at last." The
proclamation gave new life and vigor to our men on the battle-field. The bondmen
everywhere caught up the magic word, and went with it from farm to farm, and
from town to town. Black men flocked to recruiting stations, and offered
themselves for the war. Everybody saw light in the distance. What newspapers and
orators had failed to do in months was done by the proclamation in a single
week. Frances Ellen Harper, herself colored, cheered in the fobllowing strain:
[L. S.] (Signed)
PROCLAMATION OF FREEDOM. "It shall flash through
coming ages; It shall light the distant years; And eyes now dim with sorrow
Shall be brighter through their tears. It shall flush the mountain ranges, And
the valleys shall grow bright; It shall bathe the hills in radiance, And crown
their brows with light. It shall flood with golden splendor All the huts of
Caroline; And the sun-kissed brow of labor With lustre new shall shine. It shall
gild the gloomy prison, Darkened with the age's crime, Where the dumb and
patient millions Wait the better coming time. By the light that gilds their
prison, They shall seize its mouldering key; And the bolts and bars shall
vibrate With the triumphs of the free. Like the dim and ancient Chaos,
Shuddering at Creation's light, Oppression grim and hoary Shall cower at the
sight. And her spawn of lies and malice Shall grovel in the dust; While joy
shall thrill the bosoms Of the merciful and just. Though the morning seems to
linger O'er the hill-tops far away, The shadows bear the promise Of the quickly
coming day. Soon the mists and murky shadows Shall be fringed with crimson
light, And the glorious dawn of fireedom Break resplendent on the sight." 123
CHAPTER XVI. THE NEW POLICY. A New Policy announced. -
Adjutant-Gen. Thomas. - Major-Gen. Pren tiss. - Negro Wit and Humor. -
Proslavery Correspondents. - Feel ing in the Army. -Let the Blacks fight.
ATTORNEY-GEN. BATES had already given his opinion with regard to the citizenship
of the negro, and that opinion was in the black man's favor. The Emancipation
Proclamation was only a prelude to calling on the colored men to take up arms,
and the one soon followed the other; for the word "Emancipation" had scarcely
gone over the wires, ere Adjutant-Gen. Thomas made his appearance in the valley
of the Mississippi. At Lake Providence, La., he mnet a large wing of the army,
composed of volunteers from all parts of the country, and proclaimed to them the
new policy of the administration; and he did it in very plain words, as will be
seen: - "FELLOW-SOLDIERS,- Your commanding general has so fully stated the
object of my mission, that it is almost unnecessary for me to say any thing to
you in reference to it. Still, as I come here with full authority from the
President of the United States to announce the policy, which, after mature
deliberation, has been determined upon by the wisdom of the nation, it is my
duty to make known to you clearly and fully the features of that policy. It is a
source of extreme gratification to me to come 124 0
THE NEW POLICY. before you this day, knowing, as I do
full well, how glo rious have been your achievements on the field of battle. No
soldier can come before soldiers of tried valor, without having the deepest
emotions of his soul stirred within him. These emotions I feel on the present
occasion; and I beg you will listen to what I have to say, as soldiers receiving
from a soldier the commands of the President of the United States. "I came from
Washington clothed with the fullest power in this matter. With this power, I can
act as if the President of the United States were himself present. I am directed
to refer nothing to Washington, but to act promptly, - what I have to do to do
at once; to strike down the unworthy and to elevate the deserving. "Look along
the river, and see the multitude of de. serted plantations upon its banks. These
are the places for these freedmen, where they can be self-sustaining and
self-supporting. All of you will some day be on picketduty; and I charge you
all, if any of this unfortunate race come within your lines, that you do not
turn them away, but receive them kindly and cordially. They are to be encouraged
to come to us *they are to be re-kveed — with open arms; thiey are to be fed and
clothed;4.tey are to be armed. " This is the policy that has been fully
determined upon. I am here to say that I am authorized to raise as many
regiments of blacks as I can. I am authorized to give commissions, from the
highest to the lowest; and I desire those persons who are earnest in this work
to take hold of it. I desire only those whose hearts are in it, and to them
alone will I give commissions. I don't care who they are, or what their present
rank may be. I do not hesitate to say, that all proper persons will receive
commissions. 125
126 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. "While I am
authorized thus in the name of the Secre. tary of War, I have the fullest
authority to dismiss from the army any man, be his rank what it may, whom I find
maltreating the freedmen. This part of my duty I will most assuredly perform if
any case comes before me. I would rather do that than give commissions, because
such men are unworthy the name of soldiers. "This, fellow-soldiers, is the
determined policy of the Administration. You all know, full well, when the
President of the United States, though said to be slow in coming to a
determination, once puts his foot down, it is there; and he is not going to take
it up. He has put his foot down. I am here to assure you that my official
influence shall be given that he shall not raise it." Major-Gen. B. M. Prentiss,
after the cheering had subsided which greeted his appearance, indorsed, in a
forcible and eloquent speech, the policy announced by Adjutant-Gen. Thomas, and
said, that, "from the time he was a prisoner, and a negro sentinel, with firm
step, beat ill front of his cell, and with firmer voice commanded silence
within, he prayed God for the day of revenge; and he now thanked God that it had
come." Turning to Gen. Thomas, the speaker continued, "Yes: tell the President
for me, I will receive them into the lines; I will beg them to come in; I will
make them come in! and if any officer in my command, high or low, neglects to
receive them friendly, and treat them kindly, I will put them outside the lines.
(Tremendous applause.) Soldiers, when you go to your quarters, if you hear any
one condemning the policy announced here to-day, put him down as a contemptible
copperhead traitor. Call them what you please, copperheads, secesh, or traitors,
they are all the same to me: enemies
THE NEW POLICY. of our country, against whom I have
taken a solemn oath, and called God as my witness, to whip them wherever I find
them."' Congress had already passed a bill empowering the President "to enroll,
arm, equip, and receive into the land and naval service of the United States,
such a number of volunteers of African descent as he may deem equal to suppress
the present rebellion, for such term of service as he may prescribe, not
exceeding five years; the said volunteers to be organized according to the
regulations of the branch of the service into which they may be enlisted, to
receive the same rations, clothing, and equipments as other volunteers, and a
monthly pay not to exceed that of the volunteers." Proslavery newspaper
correspondents from the North, in the Western and Southern departments, still
continued to report to their journals that the slaves would not fight if an
opportunity was.offered to them. Many of these were ridiculously amusing. The
following is a sample: - "I noticed upon the hurricane-deck, to-day, an elderly
negro, with a very philosophical and retrospective cast of countenance, squatted
upon his bundle, toasting his shins against the chimney, and apparently plunged
into a state of profound meditation. Finding by inquiry that he belonged to the
Ninth Illinois, one of the most gallantly-behaved and heavily-losing regiments
at the l'ort-Donelson battle, and part of which was aboard, I began to
interrogate him upon the subject. His philosophy was so much in the Falstaffian
vein that I will give his views in his own words, as near as my memory serves
me: " Were you in the fight?' 127
THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. "' Had a little
taste of it, sa. "'Stood your ground, did you?' " No, sa; I runs.' "' Run at the
first fire, did you?' "' Yes, sa; and would ha' run soona had I know'd it war
comin'.' "'Why, that wasn't very creditable to your courage.' "'Dat isn't in my
line, sa; cookin's my perfeshun.' "' Well, but have you no regard for your
reputation?' "'Refutation's nuffin by the side ob life.' "'Do you consider your
life worth more than other people's?' "' It's worth more to me, sa.' "' Then you
must value it very highly.' "'Yes, sa, I does; more dan all dis wuld; more dan a
million of dollars, sa: for what would dat be wuf to a man wid de bref out of
him. Self-perserbashum am de fust law wid me.' "'But why should you act upon a
different rule from other men?' "'Because different men set different values
upon dar lives: mine is not in de market.' "'But if you lost it, you would have
the satisfaction of knowing that you died for your country.' "' What
satisfaction would dat be to me when de power ob feelin' was gone?' "' Then
patriotism and honor are nothing to you?' "'Nuffin whatever, sa: I regard dem as
among de vanities; and den de gobernment don't know me; I hab no rights; may be
sold like old hoss any day, and dat's all.' " If our old soldiers were like you,
traitors might have broken up the Government without resistance.' . 128
THE NEW POLICY. "'Yes, sa; dar would hab been no help
for it. I wouldn't put my life ini de scale'ginst any gobernment dat ever
existed; for no gobernment could replace de loss to me.' "'Do you think any of
your company would have missed you if you had been killed?' " May be not, sa; a
dead white man ain't much to dese sogers, let alone a dead nigga; but I'd a
missed myself, and dat was de pint wid me.' "It is safe to say that the dusky
corpse of that African will never darken the field of carnage." 9 129
CHAPTER XVII. ARMING THE BLACKS. Department of the
South.- Gen. Hunter Enlisting Colored Men.- Let ter to Gov. Andrew. - Sucoess. -
The Earnest Prayer. - The Negro's Confidence in God. THE Northern regiments
stationed at the South, or doing duty in that section, had met with so many
reverses on the field of battle, and had been so inhumanly treated by the
rebels, both men and women, that the new policy announced by Adjutant-Gen.
Thomas, at Lake Providence and other places, was received with great favor,
especially when the white soldiers heard from their immediate commanders, that
the freedmen, when enlisted, would be employed in doing fatigue-duty, when not
otherwise needed. The slave, regarding the use of the musket as the only means
of securing his freedom permanently, sought the nearest place of enlistment with
the greatest speed. The appointment of men from the ranks of the white regiments
over the blacks caused the former to feel still more interest in the new levies.
The position taken by Major-Gen. Hunter, in South Carolina, and his favorable
reports of the capability of the freedmen for military service, and the
promptness with which that distinguished scholar and Christian gentleman, Thomas
Wentworth HIigginson, accepted the colonelcy of the First South Carolina, made
the commanding of negro 130
ARMING THE BLACKS. regiments respectable, and caused a
wish on the part of white volunteers to seek commissions over the blacks. The
new regiments filled up rapidly; the recruits adapted themselves to their new
condition with a zeal that astonished even their friends; and their proficiency
in the handling of arms, with only a few days' training, set the minds of their
officers at rest with regard to their future action. The following testimonial
from Gen. H unter is not without interest: 4' HEADQUARTERS DEPARTMENT OF THiE
SOUTH, Hilton Head, Port Royal, S.C., May 4, 1863. .4 To' His FExcellency the
Governor of Massachusetts, Boston, Mass. "I am happy to be able to announce to
you my complete and eminent satisfaction with the results of the organization of
negro regiments in this department. In the field, so far as tried, they have
proved brave, active, enduring, and energetic, frequently outrunning, by their
zeal, and familiarity with the Southern country, the restrictions deemed prudent
by certain of their officers. They have never disgraced their uniform by pillage
or cruelty, but have so conducted themselves, upon the whole, that even our
enemies, though more anxious to find fault with these than with any other
portion of our troops, have not yet been able to allege against them a single
violation of any of the rules of civilized warfare. "These regiments are hardy,
generous, temperate, patient, strictly obedient, possessing great natural
aptitude for arms, and deeply imbued with that religious sentiment - call it
fanaticism, such as like —which 131
132 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. made the
soldiers of Cromwell invincible. They believe that now is the time appointed by
God for their deliverance; and, under the heroic incitement of this faith, I
believe them capable of showing a courage, and persistency of purpose, which
must, in the end, extort both victory and admiration. "In this connection, I am
also happy to announce to you that the prejudices of certain of our white
soldiers and officers against these indispensable allies are rapidly softening,
or fading out; and that we have now opening before us in this department, which
was the first in the present war to inaugurate the experiment of employing
colored troops, large opportunities of putting them to distinguished and
profitable use. "With a brigade of liberated slaves already in the field, a few
more regiments of intelligent colored men from the North would soon place this
force ill a condition to make extensive incursions upon the main land, through
the most densely populated slave regions; and, from expeditions of this
character, I make no doubt the most beneficial results would arise. "I have the
honor to be, Governor, " Very respectfully, "Your most obedient servant, "D.
HUNTER, "Majo-Gen. Commanding." Reports from all parts of the South gave
corroborative evidence of the deep religious zeal with which the blacks entered
the army. Every thing was done for "God and liberty." Col. T. W. Higginson, in
"The Atlantic Monthly," gives the following prayer, which he heard from one of
his contraband soldiers:
ARMING THE BLACKS. "' Let me so lib dat when I die I
shall hab manners; dat I shall know what to say when I see my heabenly Lord.
"'Let me lib wid de musket in one hand, an' de Bible in de oder - dat if I die
at de muzzle of de musket, die in de water, die on de land, I may know I hab de
bressed Jesus in my hand, an' hab no fear. "' I hab lef my wife in de land o'
bondage; my little ones dey say eb'ry night, "Whar is my fader?" But when I die,
when de bressed mornin' rises, when I shall stan' in de glory, wid one foot on
de water an' one foot on de land, den, 0 Lord! I shall see my wife an' my little
chil'en once more."' "These sentences I noted down, as best I could, beside the
glimmering camp-fire last night. The same person was the hero of a singular
little contretemps at a funeral in the afternoon. It was our first funeral. The
man had died in hospital, and we had chosen a picturesque burial place above the
river, near the old church, and beside a little nameless cemetery, used by
generations of slaves. It was a regular military funeral, the coffin being
draped with the American flag, the escort marching behind, and three volleys
fired over the grave. During the services, there was singing, the chaplain
deaconing out the hymn in their favorite way. This ended, he announced his
text:'This poor man cried, and the Lord heard him, and delivered him out of all
his trouble.' Instantly, to my great amazement, the cracked voice of the
chorister was uplifted, intoning the text, as if it were the first verse of
another hymn. So calmly was it done, so imperturbable were all the black
countenances that I half began to conjecture that the chaplain himself intended
it for a hymn, though I could imagine 133
134 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. no
prospective rhyme for trouble, unless it were approximinated by debbil; which
is, indeed, a favorite reference, both with the men and with his reverence. But
the clapla,in, peacefully awaiting, gently repeated his text after the chant,
and to my great relief the old chorister waived all further recitative, and let
the funeral dis course proceed. "Their memories are a vast bewildered chaos of
Jewish history and biography; and most of the great events of the past, down to
the period of the American Revolution, they instinctively attribute to Moses.
There is a fine bold confidence in all their citations, however, and the record
never loses piquancy in their hands, though strict accuracy may suffer. Thus one
of my captains, last Sunday, heard a colored exhorter at Beaufort proclaim,'
Paul may plant, and may polish wid water, but it won't do,' in which the sainted
Apollos would hardly have recognized himself. A correspondent of the Burlington"
Free Press " gives an account of a Freedmen's meeting at Belle Plain, Va. "Some
of the negro prayers and exhortations were very simple and touching. One said in
his prayer,' 0 Lord! we's glad for de hour when our sins nailed us to de foot of
de cross, and de bressed Lord Jesus put his soft arm around us, and tole us dat
we's his chillen: we's glad we's sinners, so dat we can be saved by his grace.'
Another thus earnestly prayed for the army of freedom: '0 Lord! bress de Union
army; be thou their bulwarks and ditches. 0 Lord! as thou didst hear our prayer
when we's down in de Souf country, as we held de plow and de hoe in the hot sun,
so hear our prayer at dis time for de Union army. Guard'em on de right, and on
de lef,' and in de rear: don't lef''em'lone, though they's
ARMING THE BLACKS. mighty wicked.' Another (a young
man)thus energetically desired the overthrow of Satan's empire:' 0 Lord! I if
you please, sir, won't you come forth out of de heaven, and take ride'round
about hell, and give it a mighty shake till de walls fall down.' "A venerable
exhorter got the story of the Prodiga.l Son slightly mixed, but not so as to
damage the effect at all. He said,' He rose up and went to his fader's house.
And I propose he was ragged. And I propose de road dirty. But when his fader saw
him coming over de hill, ragged and dirty, he didn't say, "Dat ain't my son." He
go and meet him. He throw his arms round his neck and kiss; and, while he was
hugging and kissing him, he thought of dat robe in de wardroom, and he said,
"Bring dat robe, and put it on him." And when dey was a putting on de robe, he
thought of de ring, dat splendid ring! and he said," My son, dat was dead and is
alive again, he like dat ring, cosit shine so." And he made dem bring de ring
and put it on his hand; and he put shoes on his feet, and killed de fatted calf.
And here, my friends, see de'fection of de prodigal for his son. But, my
bredren, you are a great deal better off dan de prodigal's son. For he hadn't no
gemmen of a different color to come and tell him dat his fader was glad to hab
him come home again. But dese handmaid bredren has kindly come dis evening to
tell us dat our heabenly Father wants us to come back now. He's ready to gib us
de robe and de ring. De bressed Lord Jesus stands leaning over de bannis. ters
of heaven, and reaching down his arms to take us up. 0 my friends! I ask you dis
night to repent. If you lose your soul, you'll never get aroder. I tell you all,
if you don't repent you're goin' straight to hell; and in de last day, when de
Lord say to you, "Depart from 135
136 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. me, ye
cursed, into everlastin' fire," if you're'onorable, you'll own up, and say it's
right. 0 my friends! I tell you de truth: it's de best way to come to de Lord
Jesus dis night.'" Regiment after regiment of blacks were mustered into the
United-States service, in all the rebel States, and were put on duty at once,
and were sooner or later called to take part in battle. 9
CHAPTER XVIII. BATTLE OF MILLIKEN'S BEND. Contraband
Regiments; their Bravery; the Surprise. - Hand to hand Fight.- " No Quarters."
-Negroes rather die than surrender. - The Gunboat and her dreadful Havoc with
the Elemy. ON the 7th of June, 1863, the first regular battle was fought between
the blacks and whites in the valley of the Mississippi. The planters had
boasted, that, should they meet their former slaves, a single look from them
would cause the negroes to throw down their weapons, and run. Many Northern men,
especially copperheads, professed to believe that such would be the case.
Thlerefore, all eyes were turned to the far off South, the cotton, sugar, and
rice-growing States, to see how the blacks would behave on the field of battle;
for it is well known that the most ignorant of the slave population belonged in
that section. The following account of the fight is from an eye wil. ness: - "My
informant states that a force of about five hundred negroes, and two hundred men
of the Twenty. third Iowa, belonging to the second brigade, Carr's division
(thie Twenty-third Iowa had been up the river with prisoners, and was on' its
way back to this place), was surprised in camp by a rebel force of about two
thousand men. The first intimation that the commanding officer received was from
one of the black men, who went into 137 ffi 4i
138 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. the colonel's
tent, and said,' Massa, the secesh are in camp." The colonel ordered him to have
the men load their guns at once. He instantly replied, "We have done did dat
now, massa." Before the colonel was ready, the men were in line, ready for
action. As be fore stated, the rebels drove our force towards the gun boats,
taking colored men prisoners and murdering them. This so enraged them that they
rallied, and charged the enemy more heroically and desperately than has been
recorded during the war. It was a genuine bayonetcharge, a hand-to-hand fight,
that has never occurred to any extent during this prolonged conflict. Upon both
sides men were killed with the butts of muskets. White and black men were lying
side by side, pierced by bayonets, and in some instances transfixed to the
earth. In one instance, two men-one white and the other black - were found dead,
side by side, each having the other's bayonet through his body. If facts prove
to be what they are now represented, this engagement of Sunday morning will be
recorded as the most desperate of this war. Broken limbs, broken heads, the
mangling of bodies, all prove that it was a contest between enraged men: on the
one side, from hatred to a race; and, on the other, desire for
self-preservation, revenge for past grievances, and the inhuman murder of their
comrades. One brave man took his former master prisoner, and brought him into
camp with great gusto. A rebel prisoner made a particular request, that his own
negroes should not be placed over him as a guard." Capt. M. M. Miller, of
Galena, Ill., who commanded a company in the Ninth Louisiana (colored) Regiment,
in a letter, gives the following account of the battle: "We were attacked here
on June 7, about three o'clock
BATTLE OF MILLIKEN'S BEND. in the morning, by a
brigade of Texas troops, about two thousand five hundred in number. We had about
six hundred men to withstand them, five hundred of them negroes. I commanded
Company I, Ninth Louisiana. We went into the fight with thirty-three men. I had
sixteen killed, eleven badly wounded, and four slightly. I was wounded slightly
on the head, near the right eye, with a bayonet, and had a bayonet run through
my right hand, near the forefinger; that will account for this miserable style
of penmanship. "Our regiment had about three hundred men in the fight. We had
one colonel wounded, four captains wounded, two first and two se ond lieutenants
killed, five lieutenants wounded, and three white orderlies killed, and one
wounded in the hand, and two fingers take off. The list of killed and wounded
officers comprised nearly all the officers present with the regiment, a majority
of the rest being absent recruiting. "We had about fifty men killed in the
regiment and eighty wounded; so you can judge of what part of the fight my
company sustained. I never felt more grieved and sick at heart, than when I saw
how my brave soldiers had been slaughtered, - one with six wounds, all the rest
with two or three, none less than two wounds. Two of my colored sergeants were
killed; both brave, noble men, always prompt, vigilant, and ready for the fray.
I never more wish to hear the expression,'The diggers won't fight.' Come with
me, a hundred yards from where I sit, and I can show you the wounds that cover
the bodies of sixteen as brave, loyal, and patriotic soldiers as ever drew bead
on a rebel. "The enemy charged us so close that we fought with our bayonets,
hand to hand. I have six broken bayo 139
140 TFHE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. nets to show
how bravely my men fought. The Twenty third Iowa joined my company on the right;
and I declare truthfully that they had all fled before our regi ment fell back,
as we were all compelled to do. "Under command of Col. Page, I led the Ninth and
Eleventh Louisiana when the rifle-pits were retaken and held by our troops, our
two regiments doing the work. " I narrowly escaped death once. A rebel took
delib erate aim at me with both barrels of his gun; and the bullets passed so
close to me that the powder that remained on them burnt my cheek. Three of my
men, who saw him aim and fire, thought that he wounded me each fire. One of them
was killed by my side, and he fell on me, covering my clothes with his blood;
and, before the rebel could fire again, I blew his brains out with my gun.. "It
was a horrible fight, the worst I was ever engaged in, not even excepting
Shiloh. The enemy cried, 'No quarter!' but some of them were very glad to take
it when made prisoners. "Col. Allen, of the Sixteenth Texas, was killed in front
of our regiment, and Brig.-Gen. Walker was wounded. We killed about one hundred
and eighty of the enemy. The gunboat "Choctaw" did good service shelling them. I
stood on the breastworks after we took them, and gave the elevations and
direction for the gunboat by pointing my sword; and they sent a shell right into
their midst, which sent them in all directions. Three shells fell there, Ed
sixty-two rebels lay there when the fight was over. "My wound is not serious but
troublesome. What few men I have left seem to think much of me, because I stood
up with them in the fight. I can say for them
BATTLE OF MILLIKENIS BEND. that I never saw a braver
company of men in my life. "Not one of them offered to leave his place until
ordered to fall back. I went down to the hospital, three miles, today to see the
wounded. Nine of them were there, two having died of their wounds. A boy I had
cooking for me came and begged a gun when the rebels were advancing, and took
his place with the company; and, when we retook the breastworks, I found him
badly wounded, with one gun-shot and two bayonet wounds. A new recruit I had
issued a gun to the day before the fight was found dead, with a firm grasp on
his gun, the bayonet of which was brokeni in three pieces. So they fought and
died, defending the cause that we revere. They met death coolly, bravely: not
rashly did they expose themselves, but all were steady and obedient to orders."
This battle satisfied the slave-masters of the South that their charm was gone;
and that the negro, as a slave, was lost forever. Yet there was one fact
connected with the battle of Milliken's Bend which will descend to posterity, as
testimony against the human,-z-h o lders _and that is, th gratn gr — eve_ found
alive -that was takena.. ner by thae rebels in this fight. 141
CHAPTER XIX. RAISING BLACK REGIMENTS AT THE NORTH.
Prejudices at the North.- Black Laws of Illinois and Indiana. - Ill-treat ment
of Negroes. - The Blacks forget their Wrongs, and come to the Rescue. IN the
struggle between the Federal Government and the rebels, the colored men asked
the question, " Why should we fight? " The question was a legitimate one, at
least for those residing in the Northern States, and especially in those States
where there'were any consid. erable number of colored people. In every State
north of Mason and Dixon's Line, except Massachusetts and Rhode Island, which
attempted to raise a regiment of colored men, the blacks are disfranchised,
excluded from the jury-box, and in most of them from the public schools. The
iron hand of prejudice in the Northern States is as circumscribing and
unyielding upon -him as the manacles that fettered the slave of the South. Now,
these are facts, deny it who will. The negro has little to hope from Northern
sympathy or legislation. Any attempt to engraft upon the organic law of the
States provisions extending to the colored man political privileges is
overwhelmingly defeated by the people. It makles no difference that here is a
pen,-and there a voice, raised in his behalf: the general verdict is against
him; and its repetition in any case where it is demanded shows that it is
inexorable. We talk a great deal about 142 I
RAISING BLACK REGIMENTS AT THE NORTH. 143 the vice of
slavery, and the cruelty of denying to our fellowmen their personal freedom and
a due reward of labor; but we are very carefill not to concede the corollary,
that the sin of withholding that freedom is not vastly greater than withholding
the rights to which he who enjoys it is entitled. When the war broke out, it was
the boast of the Administration that the status of the negro was not to be
changed in the rebel States. President Lincoln, in his inaugural address, took
particular pains to commit himself against any interference with the condition
of the blacks. When the Rebellion commenced, and the call was made upon the
country, the colored men were excluded. In some of the Western States into which
slaves went when escaping from their rebel masters, in the first and second
years of the war, the black-laws were enforced to drive them out. Read what "The
Daily Alton Democrat" said for Illinois, in the year 1862: "NOTICE TO THE'FREE
NEGROES.'- I hereby give public notice to all free negroes who have arrived here
from a foreign State within the past two months, or may hereafter come into the
city of Alton with the intention of being residents thereof, that they are
allowed the space of thirty days to remove; and, upon failure to leave the city,
will, after that period, be proceeded against by the undersigned, as by law
directed. The penalty is a heavy fine, to liquidate which the lawofficer is
compelled to offer all free negroes arrested at public auction, unless the fine
and all costs of suit are promptly paid. I hope the city authorities will be
spared the necessity of putting the above law in execu
144 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. tion. All
railroad companies and steamboats are also forbidden to land free negroes within
the city under the penalty of the law. No additional notice will be given. Suits
will POSITIVELY be instituted against all offenders. "JAMES W. DAVIS, "May 27,
1862." "Prosecuting Attorney Alton-City Court. The authorities of the State of
Indiana also got on the track of the contrabands from the rebel States; and the
old black-laws were put forth as follows: - "Any person who shall employ a negro
or mulatto who shall have come into the State of Indiana subsequent to the
thirty-first day of October, in the year one thousand eight hundred and
fifty-one, or shall hereafter come into said State, or who shall encourage such
negro or mulatto to remain in the State, shall be fined in any sum not less than
ten dollars, nor more than five hundred dollars." The following will show how
Illinois treated the colored people, even after the proclamation of freedom was
put forth by President Lincoln. "The Whiteside (Ill.) Sentinel" says the
following official notice is posted in the post-office and other public places
in the city of Carthage, Hancock County, Ill. It is a practical exemplicatic)n
of the Illinois "blacklaws." The notice reads as follows: "PUBLIC SALE.
-Whereas, The following negroes and one mulatto man were, on the fifth and sixth
days of February. 1863, tried before the undersigned, a Justice of the Peace
within and for Hancock C6unty, Ill., on a charge of high misdemeanor, having
come into this State and county, and remaining therein for ten days and more,
RAISING BLACK REGIMENTS AT THE NORTH. 145 with the
evident intention of residing in this State, and were found guilty by a jury,
and were each severally fined in the sum of fifty dollars, and the judgment was
rendered against said negroes and mulatto man for fifty dollars' fine each, and
costs of suit, which fines and costs are annexed opposite to each name, to wit:
C9sts. $33.17 32.17 30.10, 30.33 29.67 30.07 John, a negro man, tall and slim,
about Sambo, a negro man, about.. 5 3. Austin, a negro man, heavy set, about.
Andrew, a negro man, about..... Amos, a negro man, about.... Nelson, a mulatto
man, about.... "And whereas. Said fines and costs have not been paid, notice is
therefore given that the undersigned will, on Thursday, the nineteenth day of
February, A.D. 1863, between the hours of one and five o'clock, P.M., of said
day, at the west end of the Court House, in Carthage, Hancock County, Ill., sell
each of said nlegro men, John, Austin, Sambo, Andrew, Amos, and said mulatto
man, Nelson, at public auction, to the person or persons who will pay the said
fine and costs appended against each respectively for the shortest time of
service of said negroes and mulatto. "The purchaser or purchasers will be
entitled to the control and services of the negroes and mulatto purchased for
the period named in the sale, and no longer, and will be required to furnish
said negroes and mulatto with comfortable food, clothing, and lodging during
said servitude. The fees for selling will be added on completion of the sale.
"C. M. CHILD, J.P. " CARTHAGE, Feb. 9, 18683." 10 Age. 35 21 20 40 55 Fine. $50
50 50 50 50 50
146 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. It will be
seen that these odious laws were rigidly enforced. With what grace could the
authorities in those States ask the negro to fight? Yet they called upon him;
and he, forgetting the wrongs of the past, and demanding no pledge for better
treatment, left family, home. and every thing dear, enlisted, and went forth to
battle. And even Connecticut, with her proscription of the negro, called on him
to fight. How humiliating it must have been! And yet Connecticut, after
appealing to black men, and receiving their aid in fighting her battles, retains
her negro "black-laws" upon her statute. book by a vote of more than six
thousand.
CHAPTER XX. FIFTY-FOURTH MASSACHUSETTS REGIMENT. Its
Organization. - Its Appearance.- Col. Shaw. - Presentation of Col ors.- Its
Dress-Parade.- Its Departure from Boston. THE Fifty-fourth Regiment of
Massachusetts Volunteer Infantry was called into the service of the United
States by the President, under an act of Congress, passed July 21, 1861,
entitled "An Act to authorize the Employment of Volunteers to aid in enforcing
the Laws and protecting Public Property." Recruiting began Feb. 9, 1863, in
Boston. A camp of rendezvous was opened at "Camp Meigs," Readville, Mass., on
the 21st of February, with a squad of twenty-seven men; and, by the end of
March, five companies were recruited, comprising four hundred and fourteen men.
This number was doubled during April; and, on the 12th of May, the regiment was
full. Orders being received for it to proceed to the Department of the South,
the regiment broke camp on the 28th of May, and took cars for Boston. After
passing through the principal streets, and reaching the Common, they prepared to
receive the colors which were to be presented by the Governor. The regiment was
bformed in a hollow square, the distinguished persons present occupying the
centre. The flags were four in number, comprising a national flag, ' 147
148 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. presented by
young colored ladies of Boston; a national ensign, presented by the "Colored
Ladies' Relief Society;" an emblematic banner, presented by ladies and gentlemen
of Boston, friends of the regiment; and a flag presented by relatives and
fiiends of the late Lieut. Putnam. The emblematic banner was of white silk,
handsomely embroidered, having on one side a figure of the Goddess of Justice,
with the words, "Liberty, Loyalty, and Unity," around it. The fourth flag bore a
cross with a blue field, surmounted with the motto, "In hoc signo vinces." All
were of the finest texture and workmanship. Prayer having been offered by the
Rev. Mr. Grimes, Gov. Andrew presented the various flags, with the following
speech: - PRESENTATION SPEECH OF GOV. ANDREW. " COL. SHAW, - As the official
representative of the Commonwealth, and by favor of various ladies and
gentlemen, citizens of the Commonwealth, and friends of the Fifty-fourth
Regiment of Massachusetts Volunteers, I have the honor and the satisfaction of
being permitted to join you this morning for the purpose of presenting to your
regiment the national flag, the State colors of Massachusetts, and the
emblematic banner which tihe cordial, generous, and patriotic friendship of its
patrons has seen fit to present to you. "Two years of experience in all the
trials and vicissitudes of war, attended with the repeated exhibition of
Massachusetts regiments marching from home to the scenes of strife, have left
little to be said or suggested which could give the interest of novelty to an
occasion 0
FIFTY-FOURTH MASSACHUSETTS REGIMENT. like this. But,
Mr. Commander, one circumstance pertaining to the composition of the
Fifty-fourth Regiment, exceptional in its character when compared with any thing
we have seen before, gives to this hour an interest and importance, solemn and
yet grand, because the occasion marks an era in the history of the war, of the
Commonwealth, of the country, and of humanity. I need not dwell upon the fact
that the enlisted men constituting the rank and file of the Fifty-fourth
Regiment of Massachusetts Volunteers are drawn from a race not hitherto
connected with the fortunes of the war. And yet I cannot forbear to allude to
the circumstance, because I can but contemplate it for a brief moment, since it
is uppermost in your thoughts, and since this regiment, which for many months
has been the desire of my own heart, is present now before this vast assembly of
friendly citizens of Massachusetts, prepared to vindicate by its future, as it
has already begun to do by its brief history of camp-life here, to vindicate in
its own person and in the presence, I trust, of all who belong to it, the
character, the manly character, the zeal, the manly zeal, of the colored
citizens of Massachusetts and of those other States which have cast their lot
with ours. (Applause.) "I owe to you, Mr. Commander, and to the officers who,
associated with you, have assisted in the formation of this noble corps,
composed of men selected from among their fellows for fine qualities of manhood,
—I owe to you, sir, and to those of your associates who united with me in the
original organization of this body, the heartiest and most emphatic expression
of my cordial thanks. I shall follow you, Mr. CommLnander, your officers, and
your men, with a friendly and personal solicitude, to say nothing of 149 a
150 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. official
care, which can hardly be said of any other corps which has marched from
Massachusetts. My own personal honor, if I have any, is identified with yours. I
stand or fall, as a man and a magistrate, with the rise or fall in the history
of the Fifty-fourth Massachusetts Regiment. (Applause.) I pledge not only in
behalf of myself, but of all those whom I have the honor to represent to-day,
the utmost generosity, the utmost kindness, the utmost devotion of hearty love,
not only for the cause, but for you that represent it. We will follow your
fortunes in the camp and in the field with the anxious eyes of brethren and the
proud hearts of citizens. "To those men of Massachusetts, and of surrounding
States who have now made themselves citizens of Massachusetts, I have no word to
utter fit to express the emotions of my heart. These men, sir, have now, in the
Providence of God, given to them an opportunity which, while it is personal to
themselves, is still an opportunity for a whole race of men. (Applause.) With
arms possessed of might to strike a blow, they have found breathed into their
hearts an inspiration of devoted patriotism, and regard for their brethren of
their own color, which has inspired them with a purpose to nerve that arm, that
it may strike a blow which, while it shall help to raise aloft their country's
flag- their country's flag now as well as ours - by striking down the foes which
oppose it, strikes also the last blow, I trust, needful to rend the last shackle
which binds the limb of the bondman in the rebel States. (Applause.) -'I know
not, Mr. Commander, when, in all human history, to any given thousand men in
arms there has been given a work so proud, so precious, so full of hope and
glory, as the work committed to you. (Applause.) And
FIFTY-FOURTH MASSACHUSETTS REGIMENT. may the infinite
mercy of Almighty God attend you every hour of every day, through all the
experiences and vicissitudes of that dangerous life in which you have embarked!
may the God of our fathers cover your heads in the day of battle! may he shield
you with the arms of everlasting power! may he hold you always most of all,
first of all, and last of all, up to the highest and holiest conception of duty;
so that if, on the field of stricken fight, your souls shall be delivered from
the thraldom of the flesh, your spirits shall go home to God, bearing aloft the
exulting thought of duty well performed, of glory and reward won even at the
hands of the angels who shall watch over you from above I "Mr. Commander, you,
sir, and most of your officers, have been carefully selected from among the most
intelligent and experienced officers who have already performed illustrious
service upon the field during the last two years of our national conflict. I
need not say, sir, with how much confidence and with how much pride we
contemplate the leadership which we know this regiment will receive at your
hands. In yourself, sir, your staff and line officers, we are enabled to declare
a confidence which knows no hesitation and no doubt. Whatever fortune may betide
you, we know from the past that all will be done for the honor of the cause, for
the protection of the flag, for the defence of the right, for the glory of your
country, and for the safety and the honor of these men whom we commit to you,
that shall lie either in the human heart or brain or arm. (Applause.) "And now,
Mr. Commander, it is my most agreeable duty and high honor to hand to you, as
the representa tive of the Fifty-fourthl Regiment of Massachusetts Vol unteers,
the American flag, the star-spangled banner 151
152 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. of the
Republic. Wherever its folds shall be unfilrled, it will mark the path of glory.
Let its stars be the inspiration of yourselves, your officers, and your men. As
the gift of the young ladies of the city of Boston to their brethren in arms,
they will cherish it as the lover chlerishles the recollection and fondness of
his mistress; and the white stripes of its field will be red with their blood
before it shall be surrendered to the foe. (Applause.) "I have also the honor,
Mr. Commander, to present to you the State colors of Massachusetts,- the State
colors of the old Bay State, borne already by fifty-three regiments of
Massachusetts soldiers, white men thus far, now to be borne by the Fifty-fourth
Regiment of soldiers, not less of Massachusetts than the others. Whatever may be
said, Mr. Commander, of any other flag which has ever kissed the sunlight, or
been borne on any field, I have the pride and honor to be able to declare before
you, your regiment, and these witnesses, that, from the beginning up till now,
the State colors of Massachusetts have never been surrendered to any foe.
(Cheers.) The Fifty-fourth now holds in possession this sacred charge in the
performance of their duties as citizen-soldiers. You will never part with that
flag so long as a splinter of the staff, or a thread of its web, remains with.
in your grasp. (Applause.) The State colors are presenited to the Fifty-fourth
by the Relief Society, composed of colored ladies of Boston. "And now let me
commit to you this splendid emblematic banner. It is prepared for your
acceptance by a large and patriotic committee, representing many others beside
ladies and gentlemen of Boston, to whose hearty sympathy, and powerful
co-operation and aid, much of the success which has hitherto attended the
organization of
FIFTY-FOURTH MASSACHUSETTS REGIMENT. this regiment is
due. The Goddess of Liberty, erect in beautiful guise and form (liberty,
loyalty, and unity are the emblems it bears),-the Goddess of Liberty shall be
the lady-love whose fair presence shall inspire your hearts; liberty, loyalty,
unity, the watchwords in the fight. "And now, Mr. Commander, the sacred, holy
cross, representing passion, the highest heroism, I scarcely dare to trust
myself to present to you. It is the emblem of Christianity. I have parted with
the emblems of the State, of the nation,- heroic, patriotic emblems they are,
dear, inexpressibly dear, to all our hearts; but now, In hoc signo vinces, the
cross which represents the passion of our Lord, I dare to pass into your soldier
hands; for we are fighting now a battle not merely for country, not merely for
humanity, not only for civilization, but for the religion of our Lord itself.
When this cause shall ultimately fall, if ever failure at the last shall be
possible, it will only fail when the last patriot, thc last philanthropist, and
the last Christian shall have tasted death, and left no descendants behind them
upon the soil of Massachusetts. (Applause.) "This flag, Mr. Commander, has
connected with its history the most touching and sacred memory. It comes t(-,
your regiment from the mother, sister, friends, family relatives, of one of the
dearest and noblest soldier-boys of Massachusetts. I need not utter the name of
Lienut.. Putnam in order to excite in every heart the tenderest emotions of fond
regard, or the strongest feeling of p;. triotic fire. May you, sir, and these,
follow not only (,n the field of battle, but in all the walks and ways of life,
in camp, and hereafter, when, on returning peace, you shall resume the more
quiet and peaceful duties of citl 153
154 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. zens,- may
you but follow the splendid example, the sweet devotion mingled with manly,
heroic character, of which the life, character, and death of Lieut. Putnam was
one example I How many more there are we know not: the record is not yet
complete; but, oh! how many there are of these Massachusetts sons, who, like
him, have tasted death for this immortal cause! Inspired by such examples, fired
by the heat and light of love and faith which illumined and warmed these heroic
and noble hearts, may you, sir, and these, march on to glory, to victory, and to
every honor! This flag I present to you, Mr. Commander, and your regiment. In
hoc signo vinces. RESPONSE OF COL. SHAW. "Your Excellency,- We accept these
flags with feelings of deep gratitude. They will remind us not only of the cause
we are fighting for, and of our country, but of the friends we have left behind
us, who have thus far taken so much interest in this regiment, and who, we know,
will follow us in our career. Though the greater number of men in this regiment
are not Massachusetts men? I know there is not one who will not be proud to
fight and serve under our flag. May we have an opportunity to show that you have
not made a mistake in intrusting the honor of the State to a colored regiment!
-the first State that has sent one to the war. "I am very glad to have this
opportunity to thank the officers and men of the regiment for their untiring
fidelity-and devotion to their work from the very beginning. They have shown
that sense of the importance of our undertaking, without which we should hardly
have at. tained our end. (Applause.)
FIFTY-FOURTH MASSACHUSETTS REGIMENT. At the conclusion
of Col. Shaw's remarks, the colors were borne to their place in the line by the
guard, and the regiment was reviewed by the Governor. Thence they marched out of
the Common, down Tremont Street, down Coutrt Street, by the Court Hlouse,
chained hardly a decade ago to save slavery and the Union. Thence down State
Street, trampling on the very pavement over which Sims and Burns marched to
their fate, encompassed by soldiers of the United States. "Their sisters,
sweethearts, and wives "-a familiar quotation in the notices of previous
departing regiments, but looking a little odd in this new place - ran along
beside "the boys," giving their parting benediction of smiles and tears, telling
them to be brave, and to show their blood. 4 They marched in good time, and
wheeled with a readiness which showed that they had a clear idea of what was
required, and only needed a little more practice to equal the best regiments
that left the State. The regiment marched down State Street at a quarter past
twelve o'clock to the tune of "John Brown," and was vociferously cheered by the
vast crowds that cov. ered the sidewalks and filled the windows. Nowhere was the
reception of the regiment more hearty. All attempts to express the feeling of
the crowd or the soldiers seem to read stale and fiat. Yet, as Goldsmith said
that the weakest jokes were received as wit by the circle of the happy vicar, so
these attempts were treated as successes by the happy crowd. One man said it was
a verification of Shakspeare: "Know you not Pompey? You have climbed up to the
walls and battlements To see Great Pompey pass the streets of Rome." 155
156 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. One fact
should be chronicled. Their regimental banner, of superb white silk, had on one
side the coat-ofarms of Massachusetts, and on the other a golden cross on a
golden sta, with IN Hoc SIGNO VINCES beneath. This is the first Christian banner
that has gone into our war. By a strange, and yet not strange, providence, God
has made this despised race the bearers of his standard. They are thus the real
leaders of the nation. On reaching the wharf at a quarter before one, every
thing had been placed on board through the efforts of Capt. McKim; the guns were
placed in boxes, the horses put aboard, and the men began to embark. At four
o'clock, the vessel steamed down the harbor, bound for Port Royal, S.C. THE
COMPLETE ROSTER OF THE REGIMENT. Colonel.- Robert G. Shaw. Lieut.-Colonel.-
Norwood P. Hallowell. Major.- Edward N. Hallowell. Surgeon.- Lincoln R. Stone.
Assistant Surgeon. - C. B. Brigham. Captains. - Alfred S. Hartwell, David A.
Partridge, Samuel Willard, John W. M. Appleton, Watson W. Bridge, George Pope,
William H. Simpkins, Cabot J. Russell, Edward L. Jones, and Louis F. Emilo. 1st.
Lieutenants. -John Ritchie, Garth W. James, William H. Hemans, Orin E. Smith,
Erik Wulff, Walter H. Wild, Francis L. Higginson, James M. Walton, James M.
Grace, R. K. L. Jewett. 2d Lieutenants.- Thomas L. Appleton, Benjamin F. Dexter,
J. Albert Pratt, Charles F. Smith, Henry W. l,ittlefield, William Nutt, David
Reid, Charles E. Tucker, and William Howard.
FIFTY-FOURTH MASSACHUSETTS REGIMENT. Many of the men
in the Fifty-Fourth had once been slaves at the South; some had enjoyed freedom
for years; others had escaped after the breakilng out of the Rebellion. Most of
them had relatives still there, and had a double object in joining the regiment.
They were willing to risk their lives for the freedom of those left behind; and,
if they failed in that, they might, at least, have an opportunity of settling
with the "ole boss " foie a long score of cruelty. t "From many a Southern field
they trembling came, Fled from the lash, the fetter, and the chain; Return they
now, not at base Slavery's claim, To meet the oppressor on the battle-plain."
"The following song was written by a private in Company A, Fifty-Fourth
(colored) Regiment, Massachusetts Volunteers, and has been sent to us for
publication by a friend of the regiment."- Boston Transcript. " Air.-' Hoist up
the Flag.' "Fremont told them, when the war it first begun, How to save the
Union, and the way it should be done; But Kentucky swore so hard, and old Abe he
had his fears, Till every hope was lost but the colored volunteers. Chorus. -
Oh! give us a flag all free without a slave, We'll fight to defend it as our
fathers did so brave: The gallant Comnip'ny A will make the rebels dance; And
we'll stand by the Union, if we only have a chance. McClellan went to Richmond
with two hundred thousand brave: He said,'keep back the nriggers,' and the Union
he would save. Little Mac lie had his way, still the Union is in tears: Now they
call for the help of the colored volunteers. Chor. - Ohi! give us a flag,
&c. 157
158 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. Old Jeff says
he'll hang us if we dare to meet him armed: A very big thing, but we are not at
all alarmed; For he first has got to catch us before the way is clear,
And'that's what's the matter' with the colored volunteer. Chor. - Oh! give us a
flag, &c. So rally, boys, rally, let us never mind the past: We had a hard
road to travel, but our day is coming fast; For God is for the right, and we
have no need to fear: The Union must be saved by the colored volunteer. Chor.-
Oh! give us a flag, &c."
CHAPTER XXI. BLACKS UNDER FIRE IN SOUTH CAROLINA.
Expedition up the St. Mary's River.- The Negroes Long for a Fight. - Their
Gallantry in Battle. THE Department of the South, under Major-Gen. Hunter, was
the first in which the negro held the musket. By consent of the
commanding-general, I give the following interesting report from Col. T. W.
Hiigginson: "ON BOARD STEAMER' BENx DEFORD,' Sunday, Feb. 1, 1863. "Brig.- Gen.
Saxton, Military Governor, Tc. " GENERAL, - I have the honor to report the safe
return of the expedition under my command, consisting of four hundred and
sixty-two officers and men of the First Regiment of South-Carolina Volunteers,
who left Beaufort on Jan. 23, on board the steamers'John Adams,'' Planter,'
and'Ben Deford.' "The expedition has carried the regimental flag and the
President's proclamation far into the interior of Georgia and Florida. The men
haye been repeatedly under fire; have had infantry, cavalry, and even artillery,
arrayed against them; and have, in every instance, come off, not only with
unblemished honor, but with undisputed triumph. At Township, Fla., a detachment
of the expedition fotght. cavalry company which met 159
160 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. us
unexpectedly, on a midnight march through pine woods, and which completely
surrounded us. They were beaten off with a loss on our part of one man killed
and seven wounded; while the opposing party admits twelve men killed (including
Lieut. Jones, inll command of the company), besides many wounded. So complete
was our victory, that the enemny scattered, hid in the woods all night, not
returning to his camp, which was five miles distant, until noon next day; a fact
which was unfortunately unknown until too late to follow up our advantage. Had I
listened to the urgent appeals of my men, and pressed the flying enemy, we could
have destroyed his camp; but, in view of the darkness, his uncertain numbers and
swifter motions, with your injunctions of caution, I judged it better to rest
satisfied with the victory already gained. "On another occasion, a detachment of
about two hundred and fifty men, on board the'John Adams,' fought its way forty
miles up and down a river, the most dangerous in the department, -the St.
Mary's; a river left untraversed by our gunboats for many months, as it required
a boat built like the' John Adams' to ascend it successfully. The stream is
narrow, swift, winding, and bordered at many places with high bluffs, w,hich
blazed with rifle-shots. With our glasses, as we approached these points, we
could see mounted men by the hundreds galloping through the woods, firom point
to point, to await us; and, though fearful of our shot and shell, they were so
daring against musketry, that one rebel actually sprang from the shore upon the
large boat which was towed at our stern, where he was shot down by one of my
sergeants. We could see our shell scatter the rebels as they fell mowing them,
and some 9e
BLACKS UNDER FIRE IN SOUTH CAROLINA. terrible
execution must have been done; but not a man of this regiment was killed or
wounded, though the steamer is covered with bullet-marks, one of which shows
where our brave Capt. Clifton, commander of the vessel, fell dead beside his own
pilot-house, shot through the brain by a Minie-ball. Major Strong, who stood
beside him, escaped as if by magiL, both of them being unnecessarily exposed
without my knowledge. The secret of our safety was in keeping the regiment
below, except the gunners; but this required the utmost en. ergy of the
officers, as the men were wild to come on deck, and even implored to be landed
on shore, and charge on the enemy. Nobody knows any thing about these men who
has not seen them in battle. I find that I myself knew nothing. There is a fiery
energy about them beyond any thing of which I have ever read, un'less it be the
French Zouaves. It requires the strictest discipline to hold them in hand.
During our first attack on the river, before I got them all penned below, they
crowded at the open ends of the steamer, loading and firing with inconceivable
rapidity, and shouting to each other,'Never give it up!' When collected into the
hold, they actually fought each other for places at the few port-holes from
which they could fire on the enemy. "Meanwhile, the black gunners, admirably
trained by Lieuts. Stockdale and O'Neil (both being accomplished artillerists),
and Mr. Heron, of the gunboat, did their duty without the slightest protection,
and with great coolness, amid a storm of shot. "No officer in this regiment now
doubts that the key to the successful prosecution of this war lies in the
unlimited employment of black troops. Their superiority 11 161
162 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. lies simply
in the fact that they know the country, which white troops do not; and,
moreover, that they have peculiarities of temperament, position, and motive,
which belong to them alone. Instead of leaving their homes and families to
fight, they are fighting for their homes and families; and they show the
resolution and sagacity which a personal purpose gives. It would have been
madness to attempt with the bravest white troops what I have successfully
accomplished with black ones. "Every thing, even to. the piloting of the vessel,
and the selection of the proper points for cannonading, was done by my own
soldiers; indeed, the real conductor of the whole expedition at the St. Mary's
was Corporal Robert Sutton, of Company G, formerly a slave upon the St. Mary's
River; a man of extraordinary qualities, who needs nothing but a knowledge of
the alphabet to entitle him to the most signal promotion. In every instance
where I followed his advice, the predicted result followed; and I never departed
from it, however slightly, without having reason for subsequent regret. "I have
the honor to be, &c., "T. W. HIGGINSON, "Col. Corn. First Reqiment
South-Carolina Vole."
CHAPTER XXII. FREEDMEN UNDER FIRE IN MISSISSIPPI.
Bravery of the Freedmen.- Desperation of the Rebels.- Severe Battle. Negroes
Triumphant. WHILE the people along the banks of the Mississippi, above New
Orleans, were discussing the question as to whether the negro would fight, if
attacked by white men, or not, Col. Daniels, of the Second Regiment Louisiana
Volunteers, gave one side of the subject considerable of a "hist," on the 9th of
April, 1863. His official report will speak for itself. "HEADQUA}TTERS, SHIP
ISLAND (Miss.), April 11, 1863. " Brig.-Gen. Sherman, commanding Defences of New
Orleans. "SIR, In compliance with instructions from your headquarters, to keep
you promptly informed of any movements that the enemy might be known to be
making up the Mississippi Sound, upon learning that repeated demonstrations had
been made in the direction of Pascagoula, by Confederate troops ashore, and in
armed boats along the coast; and, furthermore, having reliable information that
the greater part of the forces at Mobile were being sent to re-enforce
Charleston, I determined to make a reconnoissance within the enemy's lines, at
or near Pascagoula, for the purpose of not only breaking up their
demonstrations, but of creating a di 168
164 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. version of
the Mobile forces from Charleston, and pre. cipitating them along the Sound; and
accordingly embarked with a detachment of a hundred and eighty men of my command
on United-States Transport' General Banks,' on the morning of the 9th of April,
1863, and made for Pascagoula, Miss., where we arrived about nine o'clock, A.M.,
landed, and took possession of wharf and hotel, hoisted the stars and stripes
upon the build ing, threw out pickets, and sent small detachments in various
directions to take possession of the place, and hold the roads leading from the
same. Immediately thereafter, a force of over three hundred Confederate cavalry
came down the Mobile Road, drove in the pick. ets, and attacked the squad on the
left, from whom they received a warm reception. They then fell back in some
confusion, re-formed, and made a dash upon the detachment stationed at the
hotel, at which point they were again repulsed; Confederate infantry, meanwhile,
attacking my forces on the extreme left, and forcing a small detachment to
occupy a wharf, from which they poured volley after volley into the enemy's
ranks, killing and wounding many, with a loss of one man only. The fight had now
extended along the road from the river to the wharf, the enemy being under cover
of the houses and forest; whilst my troops were, from the nature of the ground,
unavoidably exposed. The Confederates had placed their women and children in
front of their houses, for a cover, and even armed their citizens, and forced
them to fight against us. After an hour's continuous skirmishing, the enemy
retreated to the woods, and my forces fell back to the hotel and wharf. Then the
enemy sallied forth again, with apparently increased numbers, attempting to
surround the
FREEDMEN UNDER FIRE IN MISSISSIPPI. hotel, and obtain
possession of the wharf; but they were again repulsed, and driven back to their
cover,the forest. It was here that Lieut. Jones, with a detachment of only seven
men, having been placed on the extreme right, cut his way through a large force
of the enemy's cavalry, and arrived at the hotel without losing a man, but
killing and wounding a considerable number of the enemy. "After continuous
fighting, from ten o'clock, A.M., to two o'clock, P.M., and on learning that
heavy re-enforcements of infantry and artillery had arrived from the camps up
the Pascagoula River, I withdrew my forces from the hotel, and returned to Ship
Island. The enemy's loss was over twenty killed, and a large number wounded.
From my own knowledge, and from information derived from prisoners taken in the
fight, and from refugees since arrived, the enemy had over four hundred cavalry
and infantry at Pascagoula, and heavy re-enforcements within six miles of the
place. Refugees who have arrived since the engagement report the ene-. emy's
loss as greater than mentioned in my first report. "The expedition was a perfect
success, accomplish. ing all that was intended; resulting in the repulse of the
enemy in every engagement with great loss; whilst our casualty was only two
killed and eight wounded. Great credit is due to the troops engaged, for their
unflinching bravery and steadiness under this their first fire, exchanging
volley after volley with the coolness of veterans; and for their determined
tenacity in maintaining their position, and taking advantage of every success
that their courage and valor gave them; and also to their officers, who were
cool and determined through 165
.$-, 90 166 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. out
the action, fighting their commands against five times their numbers, and
confident throughout of success,- all demonstrating to its fullest extent that
the oppression which they have heretofore undergone from the hands of their
foes, and the obloquy that had been showered upon them by those who should have
been friends, had not extinguished their manhood, or sulppressed their bravery,
and that they had still a hand to wield the sword, and a heart to utaliz tilow.
"I would particularly call the attention of the Department to Major F. E. Dumas,
Capt. Villeverd, and Lieuts. Jones and Martin, who were constantly in the
thickest of the fight, and by their unflinching bravery, and admirable handling
of their commands, contributed to the success of the attack, and reflected great
honor upon the flag under and for which they so nobly struggled. Repeated
instances of individual bravery among the troops might be mentioned; but it
would be invidious where all fought so manfully and so well. "I have the honor
to be, most respectfully, "Your obedient servant, "N. U. DANIELS, " Col. Second
Regiment La. N. O. Vols., Commanding Post." 4?.-. I
CHAPTER XXIII. BATTLE OF PORT HUDSON. The Louisiana
Native Guard. - Capt. Callioux.- The Weather. - Spirit of the Troops. - The
Battle begins. - "Charge." - Great Bravery.- The Gallant Color-bearer.- Grape,
Canister, and Shell sweep down the Ileroic he-n. -Death of Callioux. - Comments.
ON the 26thl of May, 1863, the wing of tlie army under Major-Gen. Bankls was
brought before the rifle-pits and heavy guns of Port Hudson. Night fell -the
lovely Southern night-withl its silvery moonshine on the gleaming waters of the
Mississippi, that passed directly by the intrelched town. The glistening stars
appeared suspended in the upper air as globes of liquid light, while the fresh
soft breeze was bearing such sweet scents from the odoriferous trees and plants,
that a poet might have fancied angelic spirits were abroad, making the
atmosphere luminous wvithl their pure presence, and every breeze fragrant with
their luscious breath. The deep-red sun that rose on the next morning indicated
that the day would be warmn; and(, as it advanced, the heat became intense. The
earth had been long parclied, and the hitherto. green verdure had begun to turn
yellow. Clouds of dust followed every step and mnovement of the troops. The air
was filled with dust: clouds gathered, frowned upon the earth, and hastened
away. The weatherwise watched the red masses of the morning, and still hoped for
a shower to cool the air, and 167
168 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. lay the dust,
before the work of death commenced; but none came, and the very atmosphere
seemed as if it were from an overheated oven. The laying-aside of all
unnecessary articles or accoutrements, and the preparation that showed itself on
every side, told all present that the conflict was near at l)and. Gen. Dwight,
whose antecedents with regard to the rights of tihe negro, and his ability to
fight, were not of the most favorable character, was the officer in command over
the colored brigade; and busy Rumor, that knows every thing, had whispered it
about that the valor of the black man was to be put to the severest test that
day. The black forces consisted of the First Louisiana, under Lieut-Col.
Bassett, and the Third Louisiana, under Col. Nelson. The line-officers of the
Third were white; and the regiment was composed mostly of freedmen, many of
whose backs still bore the marks of the lash, and whose brave, stout hearts beat
high at the thought that the hour had come when they were to meet their proud
and unfeeling oppressors. The First was the noted regiment called "The Native
Guard," which Gen. Butler found when lie entered New Orleans, and which so
promptly offered its services to aid in crushing the Rebellion. The
linLe-officers of this regiment were all colored, taken from amongst the most
wealthy and influential of the free colored people of New Orleans. It was said
that not one of them was worth less than twenty-five thousand dollars. The
brave, the enthlusiastic, and the patriotic, found full scope folr tlhe
development of their powers in this regiment, of wvlichl all were well educated;
some were fine schlolars. One of the most efficient officers was Capt. Andr6
Callioux, a mnan whose identity with his race could not be mista
BATTLE OF PORT HUDSON. ken; for he prided himrnsel ing
the blackest man in the Crescent City. Whether in the drawing-room or on the
parade, he was ever the centre of attraction. Finely educated, polished in his
manners, a splendid horseman, a good boxer, bold, athletic, and daring, he never
lacked admirers. His men were ready at any time to follow him to the cannon's
mouth; and he was as ready to lead themn. This regiment petitioned their
commander to allow them to occupy the post of danger in the battle, and it was
granted. As the moment of attack drew near, the greatest suppressed excitement
existed; but all were eager for the fight. Capt. Callioux walked proudly up and
down the line, and smilingly greeted the familiar faces of his company. Officers
and privates of the white regiments looked on as they saw these men at the
front, and asked each other what they thought would be the result. Would these
blacks stand fire? Was not the test by which they were to be tried too severe?
Col. Nelson being called to act as brigadier-general, Lieut-Col. Finnegas took
his place. The enemy in his stronghold felt his power, and bade defiance to the
expected attack. At last the welcome word was given, and our men started. The
enemy opened a blistering fire of shell, canister, grape, and musketry. The
first shell thrown by the enemy killed and wounded a number of the blacks; but
on they went. "Charge" was the word. "Charge!" Trump and drum awoke: Onward the
bondmen broke; Bayonet and sabre-stroke Vainly opposed their rush." At every
pace, the column was thinned by the falling 169
170 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. dead and
wounded. The blacks closed up steadily as their comrades fell, and advanced
within fifty paces of where the rebels were working a masked battery, situated
oni a bluff wilere the guns could sweep the whole field over which the troops
must charge. This battery was on the left of the charging line. Another battery
of three or four guns commanded the front, and six' heavy pieces raked the right
of the line as it formed, and enfiladed its flank and rear as it charged on the
bluff. It was ascertained that a bayou ran under the bluff where the guns lay,
-a bayou deeper than a mail could ford. This charge was repulsed with severe
loss. Lieut-Col. Finnegas was then ordered to charge, and in a well-dressed
steady line his men went on the doublequick down over the field of death. No
matter how gallantly the men behaved, no matter how bravely they were led, it
was not in the course of things that this gallant brigade should take these
works by charge. Yet charge after charge was ordered and carried out under all
these disasters with Spartan firmness. Six charges in all were made. Col. Nelson
reported to Gen. Dwight the fearful odds he had to contend with. Says Gen.
Dwight, in reply, "Tell Col. Nelson I shall consider that hlie has accomplished
nothing unless he take those guns." Humanity will never forgive Gen. Dwight for
this last order; for he certainly saw that he was only throwing away the lives
of his menl. But what were his men? "Only niggers." Thus the last charge was
made under the spur of desperation. The ground was already strewn with the dead
and wounded, and many of the brave officers had fallen early in the engagement.
Among them was the gallant and highly cultivated Anselmo. He was a standard
BATTLE OF PORT HUDSON. bearer, and hugged the stars
and stripes to his heart as he fell forward upon them pierced by five balls. Two
corporals near by struggled between themselves as to who should have the honor
of again raising those bloodstained emblems to the breeze. Each was eager for
the honor; and during the struggle a. missile from the enemy Awounded one of
them, and the other corporal shouldered the dear old flag in triumph, and bore
it through the charge in the front of the advancing lines. "Now," the
flag-sergeant cried, "Though death and hell betide, Let the whole nation see If
we are fit to be Free in this land, or bound Down, like the whining hound, Bound
with red stripes and pain In our old chains again." Oh! what a shout there went
From the black regiment! Shells from the rebel guns cut down trees three feet in
diameter, and they fell, at one time burying a whole company beneath their
branches. Thus they charged bravely on certain destruction, till the ground was
slippery with the gore of the slaughtered, and cumbered with the bodies of the
maimed. \X The last charge was made about one o'clock. At this juncture, Capt.
Callioux wvas seen with his left arm dangling by his side, - for a oall had
broken it above the elbow, - while his right hand held his unsheathed sword,
gleaming in the rays of the sun; and his hoarse, faint voice waCeard-cheering on
his men. A moment more, and the brave and generous Callioux was struck by a
shell, and fel-t far- in -ad-: vance of his company. The fall of this officer so
exas 171
172 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. perated his
men, that they appeared to be filled wittl new enthusiasm; and they rushed
forward with a reck lessness that probably has never been surpassed. Seeing it
to be a hopeless effort, the taking of these batteries, order was given to
change the programme; and the troops were called off.).ut had they accomplished
any thing more than the loss of many of their brave men* Yes: they had. The
self-forgetfulniess, the undaunted' heroism, and the great endurance of the
ne(gro, as exhibited that day, created a new chapter in American history for the
colored man. Many Persians were slain at the battle of Thermopyle; but history
records only the fall of Leonidas and his tour hundred companions. So in the
future, when we shall have passed away from the stage, and rising generations
shall speak of the conflict at Port Hudson, and the celebrated charge of the
negro brigade, they will forget all others in their admiration for Andre
Callioux and his colored associates. Gen. Banlks, in his report of the battle of
Port Hudson, says, "Whatever doubt may have existed heretofore as to the
efficiency of organizations of this character, the history of this day proves
conclusively to those,who were in a condition to observe the conduct of these
regiments, that the Government will find in this class of troops effective
supporters and defenders. The severe test to which they were subjected, and the
determined manner in which they encountered the enemy, leaves upon my mind no
doubt of their ultimate success." HIon. B. F. Flanders paid them the following
tribute: "The unanimous report of all those who were in the recent battle at
Port Hudson, in regard to the negroes, i i I II i I iI i
BATTLE OF PORT HIUDSON. is, that thiley fought like
devils. They have compleitely conquered the prejudice of thle army against tlen.
Never before was thlere suchl an extraordinary rev()lution of senitimeneit as
that of this army in respect to tlh( negroes as soldiers." This change was
indeed needed; for only a fewv days previous to the battle, while the regiments
were at Batonl Routige, tile line-officers of the New-Engl(aiid troops, eithler
through jealousy or hatred to tle colored men on account of tlhcir complexion,
demanded thlat tlhe latter, as officers, should be dismissed. And, to tlhe
d(lisgrace of' these whiite officers, the colored men, tlhrougl thle mean
treatment of tlheir superiors in office, the taunts and jeers of their whlite
assailants, were compelled to thirow up their commissions. Thle colored soldiers
vwere deeply pained at seeing tl-he officers of their ovwn color and clhoice
taken from them; for they were much attached to their commanders, some of wvlom
were special favorites with tloe wliole regiment. Among these were First Lieut.
Josepll Iowvard of Company I, and Second Lieut. Joseph G. I'arlker, of Company
C. These gentlemen were both possessed of ample wvoaltl, and had entered tlhe
army, not as a matter of speculation, as too many have done, but firom a love of
military life. Lieut. fowvard was a man of more than ordinary ability in
military tactics; and a l)raver or more daring officer could not be found in the
Valley of tlhe AMississippi. lIe was well educated, speakiig the English,
Frenchl, and Spanish languages fluently, and was considered a schlolar of rare
literary attainmenits. Ite, wvith his friend Parker, felt sorely the humiliation
attending thleir disnmissal from tl)e army, and seldom showed themselves on the
streets of their native city, to whlichl they had returned. When the nevws 173
174 THE NEGRItO IN TIHE AMfERICAN REBELLION. reached
Newv Orleans of thle lheroic charge made b)y thle First Louisiana Regimnent, at
Port lIudson, on t!c 27tlh of Afay, I-Howard at once called on PI'arker; anld
tllhey were so fired wvitli the intelligence, thlat thley determined to proceed
to Port Hudson, and to join their old regiment as I)rivates. T'hlat niglt thloy
took passage, ald tlhe fillowiiiday found them withl tlheir former firieuds in
arms. The regiment wvas still in position close to the enemy's wvorks, and the
apl)earance of the twvo lieutenants was hlailed wvithl demonstrations of joy.
Instead of beiiig placed as privates in the ranks, tley were both iimmediately
assiglned the command of a company each, not firom any compliment to them, but
fiom slicer necessity, because the tuhite oocers of thlese companies, feeling
thlat tlhec colored soldiers were put in the firont of tlhe battle owing to
their complexion, were not wvilling to risk their lives, and had thrown up their
commissions. On the 5thl of June, these two officers were put to the test, and
nobly did they maintain their former reputation for bravery. Capt. HIowarvd
leading tlhe way, they charged upon thle rebel's.rifle-pits, drove thllem out,
and took possession, and held them for tlhree hours, in the face of a raking
fire of artillery. Several times the blacks were so completely hidden firom view
by tlhe smolkec of their own guns and the eI)orlly's heavy cannon, that they
could not )be seen. It was at this time, thlat Capt. Howard exhibited his
splelndid powers as a commandler. The negroes never lhesitated. Amnid tlhe roar
of artillery, and the riattlinig of muskletry, the gl'oans of tlhe wvounded, and
the gliastly appearance of thle dlead, thle heroic and intrepid Hloward wias the
same. Hle never said to llis men, " Go," bult alw\vays, " Followv me." At last,
whlen maiiy of their men were killed, and the a,l,:'
BATTLE OF PORT HUDSON. severe fire of the enemy's
artillery seemed to mow down every thing before it, these brave men were
compelled to fall back from the pits which they had so triumphantly taken. At
nightfall, Gen. Banks paid the negro officers a high compliment, shaking the
hand of Capt. Howard, and congratulating him on his return, and telling his
aides that this man was worthy of a more elevated position. Although the First
Louisiana had done well, its great triumph was reserved for the 14th of June,
when Capt. Howard and his associates in arms won for themselves immortal renown.
Never, in the palmy days of Napoleon, Wellington, or any other general, was more
true hero. ism shown. The effect of the battle of the 27th of May, is thus
described in "The New-York Herald," June 6: "The First Regiment Louisiana Native
Guard, Col. Nelson, were in this charge. They went on the advance, and, when
they came out, six hundred out of nine hundred men could not be accounted for.
It is said on every side that they fought with the desperation of tigers. One
negro was observed with a rebel soldier in his grasp, tearing the flesh from his
face with his teeth, other weapons having failed him. There are other incidents
connected with the conduct of this regiment that have raised them very much in
mny opinion as soldiers. After firing one volley, they did not deign to load
again, but went in with bayonets; and, wherever they had a chance, it was all up
with the rebels." From "The New-York Tribune," June 8: "Nobly done, First
Regiment of Louisiana Native Guard! though you failed to carry the rebel works
against overwhelming numbers, you did not charge and fight and fall in vain.
That heap of six hundred corpses, 175 -4
THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. lying there dark
and grim and silent before and within the rebel works, is a better proclamation
of freedom than even President Lincoln's. A race ready to die thus was never yet
retained in bondage, and never can be. Even the Wood copperheads, who will not
fight themselves, and try to keep others out of the Union ranks, will not dare
to mob negro regiments if this is their style of fighting. "Thus passes one
regiment of blacks to death and everlasting fame." Humanity should not forget,
that, at the surrender of Port Hudson, not a single colored man could be found
alive, although thirty-five were known to have been taken prisoners during the
siege. All had been murdered. 0 176
CHAPTER XXIV. GENERAL BANKS IN LOUISIANA. Gen. Banks
at New Orleans.- Old Slave-laws revived. - Treatment of Free Colored Persons.-
Col. Jonas H. French. - Ill Treatment at Port Hudson. GEN. BANKS'S antecedents
were unfavorable to him when he landed in New Orleans. True, he was from
Massachusetts, and was a Republican; but he belonged to the conservative portion
of the party. The word "white" in the militia law, which had so long offended
the good taste and better judgment of the majority of the people, was stricken
out during the last term of Gov. Banks's administration, but failed to receive
his sanction. In his message vetoing the bill, he resorted to a laborious effort
of special pleading to prove that the negro was not a citizen. The fact is, he
was a Democrat dressed up in Republican garments. Gen. Butler had brought the
whites and blacks nearly to a level with each other as citizens of New Orleans,
when he was succeeded by Gen. Banks. The latter at once began a system of
treatment to the colored people, which showed that his feelings were with the
whites, and against the blacks. The old slave-law, requiring colored persons to
be provided with passes to enable them to be out from their homes after
half-past eight o'clock at night was revived by Gen. Banks's understrappers, as
the following will show: 12 177 ii
178 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. " ST. CHARLES
HOTEL, NEW ORLEANS, Jan. 25. "On Tuesday evening last, at half-past eight
o'clock, while passing up St. Charles Street in company with F. S. Schell, Esq.,
the artist of' Frank Leslie's Pictorial,' who is attached to the Banks
Expedition, Iwas suddenly accosted by two colored women, one of whom, a
beautiful mulatto very tastily attired, besought me to protect her from the
watchmen, who, she said, were following close behind her on the opposite side of
the street, and were about to arrest her and her mother for being out without
passes. " I offered her and her mother all the protection in my power until they
should reach their home, which was but a few blocks distant; and I had but
scarcely made the proffer, when two powerful and muscular watchmen came running
across the street, club in hand, and at once proceeded to arrest the women. I
inquired of the officers by what authority they arrested slaves or free colored
people. They informed me that they were acting under orders received from the
chief of police, Col. Jonas H. French. "The women begged, with tears in their
eyes, for their liberty, that they might return to their homes, where a sister
was lying dangerously ill, and towards whom they were hastening when seized by
the watchmen. Being enough of a'Yankee abolitionist' to feel a glow of
indignation at this flagrant violation of human rights, and, as I supposed,
illegal assumption of power, I pro. ceeded to the prison or watch-house,
adjoining the city hall, from the roof of which flies the flag of freedom. "What
a sight was revealed to me on my visit to that prison! Such a scene may I never
be permitted to visit again! Securing permission, I went into the corridor,
GENERAL BANKS IN LBUISIANA. from which lead the cells.
There I saw, in one cell, fifteen feet by twenty feet, fifty colored women and
girls packed like so many cattle: there were six or eight wooden berths, with
pine mattresses and oak pillows, for these poor creatures to rest their limbs
upon. Of course, the most of them were obliged to stand uprightly, or lie upon
the wet flooring of the cell. "I never shall forget the emotions that arose
within my bosom as I stood intently gazing upon the sorrowing faces of these
unfortunates as they cast wistful glances through the heavy iron bars of their
cell, and in supplicating tones implored me to secure them their release. One
pretty young girl of fifteen, with a beautiful face, whose complexion was that
of a pretty Boston brunette, and with long flowing hair, slightly crimpled, was
sobbing as though her heart would break for her mother. She was terrified at the
surroundings of her new position, and the hideous yells of drunken soldiers and
sailors in the next cell. "There were confined in this cell several women, who,
in New York or Boston, would pass for white women without the slightest
difficulty or suspicion. And there were many darker countenances in that cell,
that were intelligent, and indicated the existence and beating of hearts beneath
those tinged and sable hues. In the opposite cells were over one hundred colored
men and boys of all colors, from the ebony, thick-lipped African, to the
mulatto, and delicately-tinged colored man. They were there from all ages, from
the little child of nine years, to the aged and decrepit negro of seventy-five.
There were the dandy darkey, slave and free; the laborer, slave and free; the
mechanic and waiter, slave and free. 179
180 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. "Some of
these men were the fathers, husbands, and brothers of the women in the opposite
cells. It was but a little while after, when, the jailer having barred the door
which leads into the stone corridor, I heard dis tinctly the swelling notes
of'John Brown's body lies mouldering,' &c., and shortly after thee grand
chorus of an ancient Methodist hymn,' For Jesus' sake, we'll serve the Lord.'
The next evening, I visited the cells, and found that nearly all who had been
imprisoned the pre vious evening had been released on paying a fine of one
dollar and a quarter for free people, and one dollar and a half for slaves.
"There were several likely-looking negro-girls still in the cell, and three
mothers. All of these mothers had sons in the Union army, enlisted in tile
colored Native Guard Regiment. One of them had three sons in one regiment; the
other had two sons, her only children; and the only child of the third, a boy of
nineteen years, was a sergeant in a colored company. These mothers were all the
property of rebels; for they told me their masters and mistresses swore they
would'never take the oath of allegiance to the abolition Yankee Government.' I
asked them how they happened to be imprisoned, and was informed that their
masters and mistresses had them' sent to prison for safe-keeping.' " One mother
told me she was always treated well until her sons joined the negro regiment,
since which time she had been whipped and otherwise sadly abused. She was not
allowed so much liberty at home, and her mistress had put her off on a short
allowance of food, because she did not prevent her sons from enlisting. "Hlere
is a verbatim copy of the official order requiring the arrest by the police of
all colored people found in
GENERAL BANKS IN LOUISIANA. the streets. Beyond the
simple written notice, nothing more has been made public in regard to this
important matter: -- "' OFFICE CHIEF OF POLICE. "' Lieut. J. Duan, - You are
hereby ordered to arrest all negroes out without passes after half past eight,
P.M. "' By order of "' COL. J. H. FRE —CH, "'Provost-marshal General and Clzief
of Police.'" "Notices of this kind were sent to all the station-houses, and-were
posted in the offices. It is a most despotic law to put in force at such an hour
as this, to protect the property, in the shape of human flesh and blood, in
God's creatures, belonging or owned, as they say, by the very fiends who have no
compulsion at shedding the precious life's blood of our sons and brothers,
husbands and fathers. "We, who profess to be Christian people, contributing
blood and treasure for the suppression of this cursed Rebellion, are now called
upon to provide cells for the safekeeping of their slaves."-Correspondence of
The Boston Traveller. The following private letter (says " The New-York Tribune
") from a colored man in New Orleans, cancelling an order he had previously sent
to New York for a banner, may throw some light on the state of things in the
Southern metropolis: "SIR, -If you have not had the banner commenced, it is
useless to have it made at all, as, since the issuing of the President's
proclamation, Jonas H. French has stopped all of our night-meetings, and has
caused us to get permits to hold meetings on Sunday, and sends his 181
182 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. police around
to all of the colored churches every Sun day to examine all of the permits. He
had all the slaves that were turned out of their former owners' yards re
arrested and sent back; those who belonged to rebels as well as those who belong
to loyal persons. The slaves were mustered into the rebel army. He has them con.
fined in jail to starve and die, and refuses their friends to see them. Hie is
much worse than our rebel masters, he being the chief of police. Last night,
after Gen. Banks left the city, Col. French issued a secret order to all the
police-stations to arrest all the negroes who may be found in the streets, and
at the places of amusement, and placed in jail. There were about five hundred,
both free and slave, confined, without the least notice or cause,- persons who
thought themselves free by the President's proclamation, from the parishes of
Natchitoches, Ouachita, Rapides, Catahoula, Concordia, Aragules, Jaques,
Ibervi]le, West Baton Rouge, Point Coupee, Filiciana, East Baton Rouge, St.
Helena, Washington, St. Samany. Free persons of color from any of these
parishes, who are found within the limits of the city, are immediately arrested
and placed in jail by order of Col. French. Therefore it is useless to have the
banner made, as there is no use for it since Gen. Butler has left. R. K. T." All
colored persons, even those who had been born free, and had resided in the city
from infancy, were included in the order of the provost-marshal. It is a fact
beyond dispute, that both officers and soldiers under Gen. Banks's rule in
Louisiana manifested a degree of negro hate that was almost unknown before their
ad. vent.
GENERAL BANKS IN LOUISIANA. At the siege of Port
Hudson, this prejudice against the blacks was. exhibited by all, from Gen. Banks
down to the most ignorant private. A correspondent in " The Boston
Commonwealth," dated at Port Hudson, July 17, 1864, says, "Thus, in the siege of
Port Hudson, no one knew an instance of such terrible assaults, without
possibility of success, but only repeated in obedience to Gen. Dwight's order
to' continue charging till further orders.' The white troops were unanimous in
praising the valor of this devoted regiment. How was it when the provisions of
Paragraph 11, Appendix B, Revised Army Regulations, 1863, were carried out? A
General Order from Gen. Banks authorizes'Port Hudson' to be inscribed on every
banner but those of the colored regiments, which are overlooked. Do those people
who speak so loudly in praise of these regiments at Port Hudson know they are
the only ones not authorized to inscribe' Port Hudson' on their flags? Does
Adjutant-Gen. Thomas know it? The only inscription on the banner of the glorious
Seventy-third is the blood-stain of the noible sergeant who bore it in this
fierce assault, and the rents made in the struggle of the corporals to obtain
the dear rag from the dying man who had rolled himself up in its fold. Regiments
which were ridiculed as cowards and vagabonds have Port Hudson on their flags.
Let us be cautious how we praise the First Native Guards: they have it not on
their flag. Thank God there were thousands of honest privates in the ranks of
the white regiments who will tell the story of the First Native Guards! The
changes of its designation and consolidation with other regiments will not
entirely obliterate its fame. The blood of the heroic Callioux and his fellow
183
184 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. victims at
Port Hudson will cry to Heaven, and will be heard. " And how has it run in the
campaign of 1864? This same devoted regiment followed the army of Gen. Banks to
Pleasant Hill; but Fort Pillow rushed red on the general's sight, and he dare
not let them fight. They were therefore made to' boost' along the wagontrains of
the white troops; to build the greater part of the famous bridge which saved the
fleet, and got Lieut.Col. Bailey a star; to endure the kicks and insults of
white soldiers; the officers to be put in arrest by inferior officers of white
regiments, and returned to Morganzia. Every available man is detailed daily,
raini or shine, to work on the fortifications under the jeers of loafing white
soldiers and officers." The labor-system adopted by Gen. Banks for the freedmen
was nothing less than slavery under another name. Having no confidence in the
nlegro's ability to take care of himself, he felt that, even in freedom, he
needed a master, and therefore put him in leading-strings. The general evidently
considered that the wishes of the white planters, whether rebel or not, were to
be gratified, although it were done at the expense of the black man. In
reconstructing the civil authorities of the city of New Orleans, he carried out
the same policy of ignoring the rights of the colored people, as will be seen by
the following extract from a petition of the colored citizens to President
Lincoln: "Your petitioners aver that they have applied in respectful terms to
Brig.-G-en. George F. Shepley, Military Governor of Louisiana, and to Major-Gen.
N. P. Banks, commanding the Department of the Gulf, praying to be placed upon
the registers as voters, to the end that
GENERAL BANKS IN LOUISIANA. they might participate in
the re-organization of civil government in Louisiana; and that their petition
has met with no response from those officers." This petition was signed by the
men, who, when the city was threatened by the rebels during the siege of Port
Hudson, took up arms for its defence; all of whom were loyal to the American
Union. I 185
CHAPTER XXV. HONORS TO THE NOBLE DEAD. Capt. Andre
Callioux. - His Body lies in State. -Personal Appearance. - His Enthusiasm. -
His Popularity. - His Funeral. - The great Re spect paid the Deceased. - General
Lamentation. THE death of Capt. Andr4 Callioux created a profound sensation
throughout Louisiana, and especially in New Orleans, where the deceased had
lived from childhood. This feeling of sorrow found vent at the funeral, which
took place on the 11th of July, 1863. We give the following, written at the time
by a correspondent of a New-York Journal: " NEW ORLEANS, Saturday, Aug. 1, 1863.
"The most extraordinary local event that has ever been seen within our borders,
and, I think, one of the most extraordinary exhibitions brought forth by this
Rebellion, was the funeral of Capt. Andr6 Callioux, Company E, First Louisiana
National Guards. Here, in this Southern emporium, was performed a funeral
ceremony that for numbers and impressiveness never had its superior in this
city; and it was originated and carried through in honor of a gallant soldier of
the despised race, to enslave which, it is said, will soothe this State back
into the Union. "Capt. Callioux was fine-looking, and, in his military dress,
had an imposing appearance. I remember seeing him at Gen. Banks's headquarters,
in company with at 186
HONORS TO THE NOBLE DEAD. least fifteen of our
prominent military officers; and he was a marked personage among them all. In
the celebrated assault and repulse on Port Hudson by Gen. Banks, Capt. Callioux
fell, at the head of his company, on the 27th of May last, while gallantly
leading it on to the enemy's works. His body, along with others of the national
regiments, after the battle, lay within deadly reach of the rebel sharpshooters;
and all attempts to recover the body were met with a shower of Miniebullets.
Thus guarded by the enemy, or, I might say, thus honored by their attention, the
body lay exposed until the surrender of the place, the 8th of July, when it was
recovered, and brought to this city to receive the astonishing ovation connected
with the last rights of humanity. "The arrival of the body developed to the
white population here that the colored people had powerful organizations in the
form of civic societies; as the Friends of the Order, of which Capt. Callioux
was a prominent member received the body, and had the coffin containing it,
draped with the American flag, exposed in state in the commodious hall. Around
the coffin, flowers were strewn in the greatest profusion, and candles were kept
continually burning. All the rights of the Catholic Church were strictly
complied with. The guard paced silently to and fro, and altogether it presented
as solemn a scene as was ever witnessed. " In due time, the band of the
Forty-second Massachu setts Regiment made their appearance, and discoursed the
customary solemn airs. The officiating priest, Father Le Maistre, of the Church
of St. Rose of Lima, who has paid not the least attention to the excommunication
and denunciations issued against him by the archbishop of this diocese, then
performed the Catholic service for 187
188 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. the dead.
After the regular services, he ascended to the president's chair, and delivered
a glowing and eloquent eulogy on the virtues of the deceased. He called upon all
present to affer themselves, as Callioux had done, martyrs to the cause of
justice, freedom, and good government. It was a death the proudest might envy.
"Immense crowds of colored people had by this time gathered around the building,
and the streets leading thereto were rendered almost impassable. Two companies
of the Sixth Louisiana (colored) Regiment, from their camp on the Company Canal,
were there to act as an escort; and Esplanade Street, for more than a mile, was
lined with colored societies, both male and female, in open order, waiting for
the hearse to pass through. "After a short pause, a sudden silence fell upon the
crowd, the band commenced playing a dirge; and the body was brought from the
hall on the shoulders of eight soldiers, escorted by six members of the society,
and six colored captains, who acted as pall-bearers. The corpse was conveyed to
the hearse through a crowd composed of both white and black people, and in
silence profound as death itself. Not a sound was heard save the mournful music
of the band, and not a head in all that vast multitude but wvas uncovered. "The
procession then moved off in the following order: The hearse containing the
body, with Capts. J. W. Ringgold, W. B. Barrett, S J. Wilkinson, Eugene
Mailleur, J. A. Glea, and A. St. Leger (all of whom, we believe, belong to the
Second Louisiana Native Guards), and six members of The Friends of the Order, as
pall-bearers; about a hundred convalescent sick and wounded colored soldiers;
the two companies of the Sixth Regiment; a large number of colored officers of
all native guard regiments; the carriages containing Capt. Cal
HONORS TO THE NOBLE DEAD. lioux's family, and a number
of army officers; winding up with a large number of private individuals, and the
following-named societies: - Friends of the Order. Society of Economy and Mutual
Assistance. United Brethren. Arts' and Mechanics' Association. Free Friends.
Good Shepherd Conclave, No. 2. Artisans' Brotherhood. Good Shepherd Conclave,
No. 1. Union Sons' Relief. Perseverance Society. Ladies of Bon Secours. La Fleur
de Marie. Saint Rose of Lima. The Children of Mary Society. Saint Angela
Society. The Immaculate Conception Society. The Sacred Union Society. The
Children of Jesus. Saint Veronica Society. Saint Alphonsus Society. Saint
Joachim Society. Star of the Cross. Saint Theresa Society. Saint Eulalia
Society. Saint Magdalen Society. God Protect Us Society. United Sisterhood.
Angel Gabriel Society. Saint Louis Roi Society. Saint Benoit Society.
Benevolence Society. Well Beloved Sisters' Society. Saint Peter Society. Saint
Michael Archangel Society Saint Louis de Gonzague Society. Saint Ann Society.
The Children of Moses 189
190 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. "After moving
through the principal down-town streets, the body was taken to the
Bienville-street ceme. tery, and there interred with military honors due his
rank. "Capt. Callioux was a native of this city, aged fortythree years, and was
one of the first to raise a company under the call of Gen. Butler for colored
volunteers. 'The Union,' of this city, a paper of stanch loyalty, which is
devoted to the interests of the colored people, speaking of Capt. Callioux,
says' By his gallant bearing, his gentlemanly deportment, his amiable
disposition, and his capacities as a soldier, - having received a very good
education, -he became the idol of his men, and won the respect and confidence of
his superior officers. Hie was a true type of the Louisianian. In this city,
where he passed his life, he was loved and respected by all who knew him. "' In
Capt. Callioux, the cause of the Union and freedom has lost a valuable friend.
Capt. Callioux, defending the integrity of the sacred cause of liberty,
vindicated his race from the opprobrium with which it was charged. HIe leaves a
wife and several children, who will have the consolation that he died the death
of the patriot and the righteous.' "The long pageant has passed away; but there
is left deeply impressed on the minds of those who witnessed this extraordinary
sight the fact that thousands of people born in slavery had, by the events of
the Rebellion, been disinthralled enough to appear in the streets of New
Orleans, bearing to the tomb a man of their own color, who had fallen gallantly
fighting for the flag and his country, - a man who had sealed with his blood the
inspiration he received from Mr. Lincoln's Emanci
HONORS TO THE NOBLE DEAD. pation Proclamation. The
thousands of the unfortunates who followed his remains had the flag of the Union
in miniature form waving in their hands, or pinned tastefully on their persons.
"We would ask, Can these people ever again be subjected to slavery? Are these
men who have been regenerated by wearing the United-States uniform, these men
who have given their race to our armies to fight our would-be oppressors, - are
these people to be, can they ever again be, handed over to the taskmaster? Would
a Government that would do such a thing be respected by the world, be honored of
God? Could the Christianized people of the globe have witnessed the funeral of
Capt. Callioux, there would have been but one sentiment called forth, and that
is this, - that the National Government can make no compromise on this slave
question. It is too late to retreat: the responsibility has been taken, and the
struggle must go on until there is not legally a slave under the folds of the
American flag." 191
OHAPTER XXVI. THE NORTHERN WING OF THE REBELLION. The
New-York Mob. - Murder, Fire, and Robbery.- The City given up to the Rioters.
-Whites and Blacks robbed in Open Day in the Great Thoroughfares.- Negroes
murdered, burned, and their Bodies hung on Lamp-posts.- Southern Rebels at the
Head of the Riot. TEE partial successes which the rebels had achieved at Bull
Run, Ball's Bluff, and Big Bethel, together with the defiant position of Gen.
Lee on the one hand, and the bad management of Gen. McClellan on the other, had
emboldened the rebels, and made them feel their strength. Those who had served
out their terms of service in the Union army were not very anxious to re-enlist.
The Conscript Act had been passed by Congress, and the copperhead press
throughout the land was urging the people to resist the draft, when the welcome
news of the surrender of Vicksburg and Port Hudson came over the wires. The
agents of the Confederacy were at once despatched to New York to "let loose the
dogs of wvar."' As the blacks of the South had assisted in the capture of
Vicksburg and Port Hudson, the colored people of the North must be made to
suffer for it. The mob was composed of the lowest and most degraded of the
foreign population (mainly Irish), raked from the filthy cellars and dens of the
city, steeped in crimes of the deepest dye, and ready for any act, no 192 n i ii
7"-1
NORTHERN WING OF THE REBELLION. matter how dark and
damnable; together with the worst type of our native criminals, whose long
service in the prisons of the country, and whose training in the Dernmocratic
party, had so demoralized their natures, that they were ever on the hunt for
some deed of robbery or murder. This conglomerated mass of human beings were
under the leadership of men standing higher than themselves in the estimation of
the public, but, if possible, really lower in moral degradation. Cheered on by
men holding high political positions, and finding little or no opposition, they
went on at a fearful rate. Never, in the history of inob-violence, was crime
carried to such an extent. Murder, arson, robbery, and cruelty reigned
triumphant throughout the city, day and night, for more than a week. Breaking
into stores, hotels, and saloons, and helping themselves to strong drink, ad
libitum, they became inebi.ated, and marched through every part of the city.
Calling at places where large bodies of men were at work, and pressing them in,
their numbers rapidly increased to thousands, and their fiendish depredations
had no bounds. Having been taught by the leaders of the Democratic party to hate
the negro, and having but a few weeks previous seen regiments of colored
volunteers pass through New York on their way South, this infuriated band of
drunken men, women, and children paid special visits to all localities inhabited
by the blacks, and murdered all they could lay their hands on, without regard to
age or sex. Every place known to employ negroes was searched: steamboats leaving
the city, and railroad depots, were watched, lest some should escape their
vengeance. 18 193
194 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. >Hundreds
of the blacks, driven from their homes, and hunted and chased through the
streets, presented themselves at the doors of jails, prisons, and
police-stations, and begged admission. Thus did they prowl about the city,
committing crime after crime; indeed, in point of cruelty, the Rebellion was
transferred from the South to the North. These depredations were to offset the
glorious triumphs of our arms in the rebel States. Peaceful o'er the placid
waters rose the radiant summer sun, Loyal voices shouted anthems o'er the
conquest bravely won; For the walls of Vicksburg yielded to the Union shot and
shell, While Port Hudson, trembling, waited but a clearer tale to tell. But,
alas! day's golden image scarce had left its impress there, When above a
Northern city rose the sounds of wild despair: Fiends and demons yet unnumbered
rallied forth in bold array; Deeds of darkness, scenes of carnage, marked the
traitors' onward way. Blind to feeling, deaf to mercy, who may judge the depth
of crime? None but God may know the misery traced upon the Book of Time. The
following account of the mob is from "The NewYork Times"' July 14, 1863: "The
Orphan Asylum for Colored Children was visited by the mob about four o'clock.
This institution is situated on Fifth Avenue; and the building, with the grounds
and gardens adjoining, extends from Forty-third to Forty-fourth Street. Hundreds
and perhaps thousands of the rioters, the majority of whom were women and
children, entered the premises, and, in the most excited and violent manner,
ransacked and plundered the building from cellar to garret. The building was
located in the most healthy portion of the city. It was purely I
NORTHERN WING OF THE REBELLION. a charitable
institution. In it there was an average of six or eight hundred homeless colored
orphans. The building was a large four-story one, with two wings of three
stories each. "When it became evident that the crowd designed to destroy it, a
flag of truce appeared on the walk opposite, and the principals of the
establishment made an appeal to the excited populace; but in vain. "Hlere it
was, that Chief-Engineer Decker showed himself one of the bravest of the brave.
After the entire building had been ransacked, and every article deemed worth
carrying had been taken,- and this included even the little garments for the
orphans, which tvere contributed by the benevolent ladie of the city, - the
premises were fired on the first floor. Mr. Decker did all he could to prevent
the flames from being kindled; but, when he was overpowered by superior numbers,
with his own hands he scattered the brands, and effectually extinguished the
flames. A second attempt was made, and this time in three different parts of the
house. Again he succeeded, with the aid of half a dozen of his men, in defeating
the incendiaries. The mob became highly exasperated at his conduct, and
threatened to take his life if he repeated the act. On the front steps of the
building, he stood up amid an infuriated and half-drunken mob of two thousand,
and begged of them to do nothing so disgraceful to humanity as to burn a
benevolent institution, which had for its object nothing but good. He said it
would be a lasting disgrace to them and to the city of New York. "These remarks
seemed to have no good effect upon them, and meantime the premises were again
fired,this time in all parts of the house. Mr. Decker, with 195
196 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. his few brave
men, again extinguished the flames. This last act brought down upon him the
vengeance of all who were bent on the destruction of the asylum; and but for the
fact that some firemen surrounded him, and boldly said that Mr. Decker could not
be taken except over their bodies, he would have been despatched on the spot.
The institution was destined to be burned; and, after an hour and a half of
labor on the part of the mob, it was in flames in all parts. Three or four
persons were horribly bruised by the falling walls; but the names we could not
ascertain. There is now scarcely one brick left on another of the Orphan Asylum.
"At one o'clock yesterday, the garrison of the Seventh-avenue arsenal witnessed
a sad and novel sight. Winding slowly along Thirty-fourth Street into Seventh
Avenue, headed by a strong police force, came the little colored orphans, whose
asylum had been burned down on Monday night. The boys, from two and three to
fifteen years of age, followed by little girls of the same ages, to the number
of about two hundred each, trotted along, and were halted in front of the
arsenal. "Then came a large number of men and women, several having babes in
their arms, who had been forced to seek refuge in adjacent station-houses from
the fury of the mob. Most of them carried small bundles of clothing and light
articles of furniture, all they had been able to save from the wreck of their
property. The negroes who had sought safety under the guins of the arsenal were
then taken out, and ordered to join their friends outside. The procession was
then re-formed, and, headed by the police, marched back again down Thirty-fifth
Street to the North River. "A strong detachment of Hawkins's Zouaves guarded
NORTHERN WING OF THE REBELLION. the flanks of the
procession; while a company of the Tenth New-York Volunteers, and a squad of
police, closed up the rear. Col. William Meyer had command of the escort; and on
arriving at the pier, where a numerous crowd had followed them, hlie placed his
men, with fixed bayonets, facing the people to keep them in check; and the
negroes were all safely embarked, and conveyed to Ricker's Island. "The poor
negroes have had a hard time. Finding they were to be slaughtered
indiscriminately, they have hid themselves in cellars and garrets, and have
endeavored, under cover of darkness, to flee to neighboring places. The Elysian
Fields, over in Hoboken, has been a pretty safe refuge for them,.as there are
but few Irish living in that city. They have a sort of improvised camp there,
composed mainly of women and children." Blacks were chased to the docks, thrown
into the river, and drowned; while some, after being murdered, were hung to
lamp-posts. Between forty and fifty colored persons were killed, and nearly as
many mailued for life. But space will not allow us to give any thing like a
detailed account of this most barbarous outrage. *..... 197
CHAPTER XXVII. ASSAULT ON FORT WAGNER. The
Fifty-fourth Massachusetts Regiment.- Col. Shaw.- March to the Island. -
Preparation.- Speeches. - The Attack. - Storm of Shot, Shell, and Canister.-
Heroism of Officers and Men. - Death of Col. Shaw. - The Color-sergeant. - The
Retreat. -" Buried with his Niggers." - Comments. ON the 16th of July, the
Fifty-fourth Regiment (colored), Col. R. G. Shaw, was attacked by the enemy, on
James Island, in which a fight of two hours' duration took place, the Rebels
largely outnumbering the Union forces. The Fifty-fourth, however, drove the
enemy before them in confusion. The loss to our men was fourteen killed and
eighteen wounded. During the same day, Col. Shaw received orders from Gen.
Gillmore to evacuate the island. Preparations began at dusk. The night was dark
and stormy, and made the movement both difficult and dangerous. The march was
from James Island to Cole Island, across marshes, streams, and dikes, and part
of the way upon narrow foot-bridges, along which it was necessary to proceed in
single-file. The whole force reached Cole Island the next morning, July 17, and
rested during the day on the beach opposite the south end of Folly Island. About
ten o'clock in the evening, the colonel of the Fifty-fourth received orders
directing him to report, with his command, to Gen. George C. Strong, at Morris
Island, to whose brigade the regiment 'was transferred. 198 \
ASSAULT ON FORT WAGNER. From eleven o'clock of Friday
evening until four o'clock of Saturday, they were being put on the transport,
"The Gen. Hunter," in a boat which took about fifty at a time. There they
breakfasted on the same fare, and had no other food before entering into the
assault on Fort Wagner in the evening. "The Gen. Hunter" left Cole Island for
Folly Island at six, A.M.; and the troops landed at Pawnee Landing about nine
and a half, A.M., and thence marched to the point opposite Morris Island,
reaching there about two o'clock in the afternoon. They were transported in a
steamer across the inlet, and at four, P.M., began their march for Fort Wagner.
They reached Brigadier-Gen. Strong's quarters, about midway on the island, about
six or six and a half o'clock, where they halted for five minutes. Gen. Strong
expressed a great desire to give them food and stimulants; but it was too late,
as they had to lead'the charge. They had been without tents during the pelting
rains of Thursday and Friday nights. Gen. Strong had been impressed with the
high character of the regiment and its officers; and he wished to assign them
the post where the most severe work was to be done and the highest honor was to
be won. The march across Folly and Morris Islands was over a sandy road, and was
very wearisome. The regiment went through the centre of the island, and not
along the beach, where the marching was easier. When they had come within six
hundred yards of Fort Wagner, they formed in line of battle, the colonel heading
the first, and the major the second battalion. This was within musket-shot of
the enemy. There was little firing from the enemy; a solid shot falling between
the battalions, and another falling to the right, but no . *- ~e.e 2'::.'"i: 199
200 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. musketry. At
this point, the regiment, together with the next supporting regiment, the Sixth
Connecticut, Ninth Maine, and others, remained half an hour. The regiment was
addressed by Gen. Strong and by Col. Shaw. Then, at seven and a half or seven
and three-quarters o'clock, the order for the charge was given. The regiment
advanced at quick time, changed to double-quick when at some distance on. The
intervening distance between the place where the line was formed and the fort
was run over in a few minutes. When about one hundred yards from the fort, the
rebel musketry opened with such terrible effect, that, for an instant, the first
battalion hesitated,- but only for an instant; for Col. Shaw, springing to the
front and waving his sword, shouted, "Forward, my brave boys!" and with another
cheer and a shout they rushed through the ditch, gained the parapet on the
right, and were -soon engaged in a hand-to-hand conflict with the enemy. Col.
Shaw was one of the first to scale the walls. He stood erect to urge forward his
men, and, while shouting for them to press on, was shot dead, and fell into the
fort. His body was found, with twenty of his men lying dead around him; two
lying on his own body. The Fifty-fourth did well and nobly; only the fall of
Col. Shaw prevented them from entering the fort. They moved up as gallantly as
any troops could, and, with their enthusiasm, they deserved a better fate. _
Sergeant-major Lewis H. Douglass, son of Frederick Douglass, the celebrated
orator, sprang upon the parapet close behind Col. Shaw, and cried out," Come,
boys, come, let's fight for God and Governor Andrew." This brave young man was
the last to leave the parapet. Be II
ASSAULT ON FORT WAGNER. fore the regiment reached the
parapet, the color-sergeant was wounded; and, while in the act of falling, the
colors were seized by Sergt. William H. Carney, who bore them up, and mounted
the parapet, where he, too, received three severe wounds. But, on orders being
given to retire, the color-bearer, though almost disabled, still held the emblem
of liberty in the air, and followed his regiment by the aid of his comrades, and
succeeded in reaching the hospital, where he fell exhausted and almost lifeless
on the floor, saying, "The old flag never touched the ground, boys." Capt. Lewis
F. Emilio, the junior captain,-all of his superiors having beeii killed or
wounded, -took command, and brought the regiment into camp. In this battle, the
total loss in officers and men, killed and wounded, was two hundred and
sixty-one. When John Brown was led out of the Charlestown jail, on his way to
execution, hlie paused a moment, it will be remembered, in the passage-way, and,
taking a little colored child in his arms, kissed and blessed it. The dying
blessing of the martyr will descend from generation to generation; and a whole
race will cherish for ages the memory of that simple caress, which, degrading as
it seemed to the slaveholders around him, was as sublime and as touching a
lesson, and as sure to do its work in the world's history, as that of Him who
said, "Suffer little children to come unto me." When inquiry was made at Fort
Wagner, under flag of truce, for the body of Col. Shaw of the Massachusetts
Fifty-fourth, the answer was, "We have buried him with his niggers!" It is the
custom of savages to outrage the dead, and it was only natural that the natives
of South Carolina should attempt to lheap insult upon the remains of the brave
young soldier; but that wide grave 201
202 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. on Morris
Island will be to a whole race a holy sepulchre. No more fitting burial-place,
no grander obsequies, could have been given to him who cried, as he led that
splendid charge, "On, my brave boys!" than to give to him and to them one common
grave. As they clustered around him in the fight; as they rallied always to the
clear ring of his loved voice; as they would have laid down their lives, each
and all of them, to save his; as they honored and reverenced him, and lavished
on him all the strong affections of a warm-hearted and impulsive people: so when
the fight was over, and he was found with the faithful dead piled up like a
bulwark around him, the poor savages did the only one fitting thing to be done
when they buried them together. Neither death nor the grave has divided the
young martyr and hero from the race for which he died; and a whole people will
remember in the coming centuries, when its new part is to be played in the
world's history, that "he was buried with his niggers!" "They buried him with
his niggers!" Together they fought and died. There was room for them all where
they laid him (The grave was deep and wide), For his beauty and youth and valor,
Their patience and love and pain; And at the last day together They shall all be
found again. "They buried him with his niggers!" Earth holds no prouder grave:
There is not a mausoleum In the world beyond the wave, That a nobler tale has
hallowed, Or a purer glory crowned, Than the nameless trench where they buried
The brave so faithful found. i
ASSAULT ON FORT WAGNER. "They buried him with his
niggers!" A wide grave should it be. They buried more in that shallow trench
Than human eye could see. Ay: all the shames and sorrows Of more than a hundred
years Lie under the weight of that Southern soil Despite those cruel sneers.
"They buried him with his niggers!" But the glorious souls set free Are leading
the van of the army That fights for liberty. Brothers in death, in glory The
same palm-branches bear; And the crown is as bright o'er the sable brows As over
the golden hair. Only those who knew Col. Shaw can understand how fitting it
seems, when the purpose of outrage is put aside and forgotten, that he should
have been laid in a common grave with his black soldiers. The relations between
colored troops and their officers - if these are good for any thing, and fit for
their places- must need be, from the circumstances of the case, very close and
peculiar. They were especially so with Col. Shaw and his regiment. His was one
of those natures which attract first through the affections. Most gentle
tempered, genial as a warm winter's sun, sympathetic, full of kindliness,
unselfish, unobtrusive and gifted with a manly beauty and a noble bearing, he
was sure to win the love, in a very marked degree, of men of a race peculiarly
susceptible to influence from such traits of character as these. First, they
loved him with a devotion which could hardly exist anywhere else than in the
peculiar relation he held to them as commander of the first regiment of free
colored men permitted to fling out a military 203
204 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. banner in
this country,- a banner that, so raised, meant to them so much! But, then, came
closer ties; they found that this young man, with education and habits that
would naturally lead him to choose a life of ease, with wealth at his command,
with peculiarly happy social relations (one most tender one just formed),
accepted the position offered him in consideration of his soldierly as well as
moral fitness, because he recognized a solemn duty to the black man; because he
was ready to throw down all that he had, all that he was, all that this world
could give him, for the negro race! Beneath that gentle and courtly bearing
which so won upon the colored people of Boston when the Fifty-fourth was in
camp, beneath that kindly but unswerving discipline of the commanding officer,
beneath that stern but always cool and cheerful courage of the leader in the
fight, was a clear and deep conviction of a duty to the blacks. He hoped to lead
them, as one of the roads to social equality, to fight their way to true
freedom; and herein he saw his path of duty. Of the battle two days before that
in which he fell, and in which his regiment, by their bravery, won the right to
lead the attack on Fort Wagner, he said, "I wanted my men to fight by the side
of whites, and they have done it;" thinking of others, not of himself; thinking
of that great struggle for equality in which the race had now a chance to gain a
step forward, and to which he was ready to devote his life. Could it have been
for him to choose his last resting-place, he would, no doubt, have said, "Bury
me with my men if I earn that distinction." Buried with a band of brothers Who
for him would fain have died; Buried with the gallant fellows Who fell fighting
by his side;
ASSAULT ON FORT WAGNER. Buried with the men God gave
him, Those whom he was sent to save; Buried with the martyred heroes, Hie has
found an honored grave. Buried where his dust so precious Makes the soil a
hallowed spot; Buried where, by Christian patriot, He shall never be forgot;
Buried in the ground accursed, Which man's fettered feet have trod; Buried where
his voice still speaketh, Appealing for the slave to God; Fare thee well, thou
noble warrior, Who in youthful beauty went On a high and holy mission, By the
God of battles sent. Chosen of Him, "elect and precious," Well didst thou fulfil
thy part: When thy country" counts her jewels," She shall wear thee on her
heart. One who was present, speaking of the incidents be. fore the battle, says
of Col. Shaw, - "The last day with us, or, I may say, the ending of it, as we
lay flat on the ground before the assault, his man ner was more unbending than I
had ever noticed before in the presence of his men. He sat on the ground, and
was talking to the men very familiarly and kindly. He told them how the eyes of
thousands would look upon the night's work they were about to enter on; and he
said, 'Now, boys, I want you to be men!' I He would walk along the line, and
speak words of cheer to his men. "We could see that he was a man who had counted
the cost of the undertaking before him; for his words were spoken ominously, his
lips were compressed, and now 205
206 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. and then
there was visible a slight twitching of the corners of the mouth, like one bent
on accomplishing or dying. One poor fellow, struck no doubt by the colonel's
determined bearing, exclaimed, as he was passing him,'Colonel, I will stay by
you till I die;' and he kept his word: he has never been seen since. For one so
young, Col. Shaw showed a well-trained mind, and an ability of governing men not
possessed by many older or more experienced men. In him the regiment has lost
one of its best and most devoted friends. Col. Shaw was only about twenty-seven
years of age, and was married a few weeks before he joined the army of the
South." The following correspondence between the father of Col. Shaw and Gen.
Gillmore needs no comment, but is characteristic of the family - " Brig.- Gen.
Gillmore, commanding Department of the South. "SIR,- I take the liberty to
address you, because I am informed that efforts are to be made to recover the
body of my son, Col. Shaw, of the Fifty-fourth Massachusetts Regiment, which was
buried at Fort Wagner. My object in writing is to say that such efforts are not
authorized by me, or any of my family, and that they are not approved by us. We
hold that a soldier's most appropriate burial-place is on the field where he has
fallen. I shall, therefore, be much obliged, general, if, in case the matter is
brought to your cognizance, you will forbid the desecration of my son's grave,
and prevent the disturbance of his remains or of those buried with him. With
most earnest wishes for your success, I am, sir, with respect and esteem, "Your
most obedient servant, FRANCIS GEORGE SHAW. "NEW YORIK, Aug. 24, 1863." I I
ASSAULT ON FORT WAGNER. HEADQUARTERS DEPARTMENT OF THE
SOUTH, Morris Island, S.C., Sept. 5, 1863. " F. G. Shaw, Esq., Clifion, Staten
Island, N. Y. "SIR, -I have just received your letter, expressing the
disapprobation of yourself and family of any effort to recover the body of your
son, the late Col. Shaw, of the Fifty-fourth Massachusetts Volunteers, buried in
Fort Wagner; and requesting me to forbid the desecration of his grave or
disturbance of his remains. "Had it been possible to obtain the body of Col.
Shaw immediately after the battle in which he lost his life, I should have sent
it to his friends, in deference to a sentiment which I know to be widely
prevalent among the friends of those who fall in battle, although the practice
is one to which my own judgment has never yielded assent. "The views expressed
in your letter are so congenial to the feelings of an officer, as to command not
only my cordial sympathy, but my respect and admiration. Surely no resting-place
for your son could be found more fitting than the scene where his courage and
devotion were so conspicuously displayed. " I beg to avail myself of this
opportunity to express my deep sympathy for yourself and family in their great
bereavement, and to assure you that on no authority less than your own shall
your son's remains be disturbed. "Very respectfully, your obedient servant, "Q.
A. GILLMORE, "Brigadier-General commanding." The following address of the
Military Governor of South Carolina to the people of color in the Department of
the South pays a fit tribute to the memory of the lamented Col. Shaw: - 207
208 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. " BEAUFORT,
S.C., July 27, 1863. To the Colored Soldiers and Freedmen in this Department.
"It is fitting that you should pay a las,t tribute of respect to the memory of
the late Col. Robert Gould Shaw, Colonel of the Fifty-fourth Regiment of
Massachusetts Volunteers. He commanded the first regiment of colored soldiers
from a free State ever mustered illto the United-States service. "iHe fell at
the head of his regiment, while leading a storming-party against a rebel
stronghold. You should cherish in your inmost hearts the memory of one who did
not hesitate to sacrifice all the attractions of a high social position, wealth
and home, and his own noble life, for the sake of humanity; another martyr to
your cause that death has added; still another hope for your race. The truths
and principles for which he fought and died still live, and will be vindicated.
On the spot where he fell, by the ditch into which his mangled and bleeding body
was thrown, on the soil of South Carolina, I trust that you will honor
yourselves and his glorious memory by appropriating the first proceeds of your
labor as free men toward erecting an enduring monument to the hero, soldier,
martyr, Robert Gould Shaw. "' R. SAXTON, " Brigadier-General and M]ilitarqy
Governor." We are glad to be able to say, that the noble proposition of Gen.
Saxton met with success. Col. Shaw was singularly fortunate in being surrounded
by officers, like himself, young, brave, and enthusiastic. Major Hallowell, the
next in command, was wounded while urging forward his men. Adjutant (T. W.
James, Capts. S. Willard, J. W. M. Appleton, E. L.
ASSAULT ON FORT WAGNER. Jones, G. Pope, W. IH.
Simpkins, C. J. Russell, and C. E. Tucker, and Lieuts. O. E. Smith, W. IH.
Homan, R. H. Jewett, and J. A. Pratt, — were severely wounded. A large
proportion of the non-commissioned officers fell in the engagement or were badly
wounded. Among these was Sergt. R. J. Simmons, a young man of more than ordinary
ability, who had learned the science of war in the British army. The writer
enlisted him in the city of New York, and introduced him to Francis George Shaw,
Esq., who remarked at the time that Simmons would make "a valuable soldier."
Col. Shaw, also, had a high opinion of him. He died of his wounds in the enemy's
hospital at Charleston, from bad treatment. The heroic ac t of Sergt. Carn ey'
to which we have already alludea called forth the following correspondence,
which needs no comments, from the Adjutant-General's Report of the State of
Massachusetts for the year 1865: "NEW YORK, 596 Broadway, Room 10, Dec. 13,
1865. "To Adjutant- General of Massachusetts, Boston. "SIR, -Will you be pleased
to give me the name of some officer of the Fifty-fourth Massachusetts colored
regiment, so that I can obtain information concerning the famous assault that
regiment made on Fort Wagner? I wish to learn the facts relating to the wounded
colorbearer, who, though wounded severely, bore the flag heroically while
crawling from the parapet to his retreating or repulsed regiment. It would make
a splendid subject for a statuette. "Respectfully, "T. H. BARTLETT, " Sculptor."
14 209
210 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. I immediately
forwarded the letter to Col. Hlallowell, w i t h a request that he woul d
furnish me with all the facts relating to the incident which he possessed. The
following is Col. Hallowell's reply: - "BOSTON, DI)ec. 18, 1865. " William
Schouler, Adjutant-General. "DEAR SIR, - Your letter of the 15th to my brother,
enclosing one from Mr. Bartlett, and requesting me to furnish a statement of
facts relating to Sergt. Carney, of the Fifty-fourth Regiment Massachusetts
Volunteers, is received. The following statement is, to the best of my knowledge
and belief, correct; but you must remember it is made up principally from
hearsay, no one person having seen every incident, except the sergeant. During
the assault upon Fort Wagner, July 18, 1863, the sergeant carrying the national
colors of the Fifty-fourth Massachusetts Volunteers fell; but, before the colors
reached the ground, Sergt. Carney, of Company C, grasped them, and bore them to
the parapet of the fort; where he received wounds in both legs, in the breast,
and in the right arm: he, however, refused to give up his trust. When the
regiment retired from the fort, Sergt. Carney, by the aid of his comrades,
succeeded in reaching the hospital, still holding on to the flag, where he fell,
exhausted and almost lifeless, on the floor, saying,'The old flag never touched
the ground, boys.' At the time the above happened, I was not in a condition to
verify the truth of the statements made to me; but they come to me from very
reliable parties, and from very different people; so, after a close
cross-examination of the sergeant (who was known as a truthful man), I have
concluded that the statement I have made is substantially correct. I -t ., I i
ASSAULT ON FORT WAGNER. "Sergt. Carney was an African,
of, I should think, full blood; of very limited education, but very intelligent;
bright face, lips and nose (comparatively) finely cut, head rather round, skin
very dark, height about five feet eight inches, not very athletic or muscular;
had lived in New Bedford, Mass., for many years. Hoping this will be of service
to Mr. Bartlett, I have the honor to be, very respectfully, "Your obedient
servant, "E. N. HALLOWELL, "Late Colonel, sc." 211
C HI A P T E R XXVIII. THE SLAYE-MARTYR. The Siege of
Washington, N. C.- Big Bob, the Negro Scout.- The Peri lous Adventure. - The
Fight. -Return.- Night Expedition. - The Fatal Sandbar.- The Enemy's Shells.-"
Somebody's got to die to get us out of this, and it may as well be me." - Death
of Bob. Safety of the Boat. THE siege of Washington, N.C., had carried
consternation among the planters of the surrounding country, and contrabands
were flocking in by hundreds, when, just at day-break one morning, a band of
seventeen came to the shore, and hailed the nearest gunboat. The blacks were
soon taken on board, when it was ascertained that they had travelled fifty miles
the previous night, guided by their leader, a negro whom they called "Big Bob."
This man was without a drop of AngloSaxon blood in his veins, if color was a
true index. It was also soon known that he was a preacher, or had been, among
his fellow-slaves. These men all expressed a desire to be put to work, and, if
allowed, to fight for "de ole flag." "Big Bob" sported a suit of rebel gray,
which his fellow-slaves could not; and the way in which he obtained it was
rather amusing. In the region from which they escaped, the blacks were being
enrolled in the rebel army; and Bob and his companions were taken, and put under
guard, preparatory to their being removed to the nearest military post. Bob,
however, 212 I I I
THE SLAVE-MARTYR. resolved that he would not fight for
the rebel cause, and induced his comrades to join in the plan of seizing the
guard, and bringing him away with them; which they did, Bob claiming the rebel
soldier's clothes, when that individual was dismissed, after a march of thirty
miles from their home. Bob made an amusing appearance, being above six feet in
height, and dressed in a suit, the legs of the pants of which were five or six
inches too short, and the arms of the coat proportionally short. A few days
after the arrival of the contrabands, their services were needed in an important
expedition in the interior. These negroes, upon being told what was wanted of
them, although knowing that the enterprise would be attended with the greatest
danger, and would require the utmost skill, volunteered their services, and,
upon being furnished with arms and implements, immediately started upon the
expedition. Being landed upon a point some little distance from Washington, they
succeeded in penetrating the enemy's country, arresting three very important
rebels, and conveying them to the fleet. In the return march, the rebels
complained at their being made to walk so far and so fast; but Bob, the captain
of the company, would occasionally be heard urging them along after this style:
"March along dar, massa; no straggling to de rear: come, close up dar, close up
dar! we're boss dis time." On the arrival of the party, the blacks were highly
complimented by the commander. A week had scarcely passed, and the slaves
rested, before they were sent upon a more difficult and dangerous expedition;
yet these men, with Bob to lead them, were ready for any enterprise, provided
they could have arms and ammunition. Once more landed 213 I
214 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. on shore,
they started with a determination to accornplish the object for which they had
been sent. They had not gone far before they were attacked by a scouting-party
from the rebel camp, and four of the whites and one of the blacks were killed:
one also of the latter was wounded. However, the rebels were put to flight, and
the negroes made good their escape. Still bent on obeying the orders of the
commander, they took a somewhat different route, and proceeded on their journey.
Having finished their mission, which was the destroying of two very large
salt-works, breaking up fifty saltkettles, a large tannery, and liberating
twenity-three slaves, some of whom they armed with guns taken in their fight
with the rebels, Bob commenced retracing his steps. The return was not so easily
accomplished, for the enemy were well distributed on the line between them and
the gunboats. After getting within four miles of the fleet, and near Point
Rodman, a fight took place between the colored men and the rebels, which lasted
nearly an hour. The blacks numbered less than forty; while the whites were more
than one hundred. The negroes were called upon to surrender; but Bob answered,
"No, I never surrenders." And then he cried out, "Come on, boys! ef we's captud,
we's got to hang; and dat's a fack. And nobly did they fight, whipping their
assailants, and reaching the gunboats with but the loss of three men killed and
ten wounded. Bob and his companions were greatly praised when once more on the
fleet. But Bob's days were numbered; for the next day a flat full of soldiers,
with four blacks, including Bob, attempted to land at Rodman's Point, but were
repulsed by a terrible fire of rebel bullets, all tumbling into I I
THE SLAVE-MARTYR. the boat, and lying flat to escape
being shot. Mean while the boat stuck fast on the sand-bar, while the balls were
still whizzing over and around the flat. Seeing that something must be done at
once, or all would be lost, Big Bob exclaimed, "Somebody's got to die to get us
out of this, and it may as well be me!" He then deliberately got out, and pushed
the boat of, and fell into it, pierced by five bullets. "The surf with
ricochetting balls Was cfiurned and splashed around us: I heard my comrades'
hurried calls, ' The rebel guns have found us.' Our vessel shivered! Far beneath
The treacherous sand had caught her. What man will leap to instant death To
shove her into water? Strange light shone in our hero's eye; His voice was
strong and steady: ' My brothers, one of us must die; And I, thank God! am
ready.' A shell flew toward us, hissing hate, Then screaming like a demon: He
calmly faced the awful fate, Resolved to die a freeman. He fell, his heart cut
through with shot: The true blood of that martyr Out from his body spurted hot
To flee the shame of barter. We lifted up the brave man's corse; We thought him
fair and saintly: The rebel bullets round us hoarse We heard, but dull and
faintly. 215
216 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. ' Tis ever
so: a great deed wrought, The doer falls that moment, As if to save the God-like
thought From amy human comment. Heroes are dead men by that fact; Fame haunts
our grave-yards, sighing, 'Alas! that man's divinest act Should be the act of
dying."'
CHAPTER XXIX.. BATTLE OF OLUSTEE, FLORIDA. The Union
Troops decoyed into a Swamp.- They are outnumbered. Their great Bravery.- The
Heroism of the Fifty-fourth Massachu setts. -Death of Col. Fribley. THE battle
of Olustee was fought in a swamp situ. ated thirty-five miles west of
Jacksonville, and four miles from Sanderson, in the State of Florida. The
expedition was under the immediate command of Gen. C. Seymour, and consisted of
the Seventh New Hampshire, Seventh Connecticut (armed with Spencer rifles, which
fire eight times without loading), Eighthl United-States (colored) Battery,
Third United-States Artillery, Fiftyfourth Massachusetts (colored), and First
North-Carolina (colored). The command having rested on the night of the 19th of
February, 1864, at Barbour's Ford, on the St. Mary's River, took up its line of
march on. the morning of the 20th, and proceeded to Sanderson, nine miles to the
west, which was reached at one o'clock, P.M., without interruption; but, about
three miles beyond, the advance drove in the enemy's pickets. The Seventh
Connecticut, being deployed as skirmishers, fell in with the enemy's force in
the swamp, strengthened still more by rifle-pits. Here they were met by cannon
and musketry; but our troops, with their Spencer rifles, played great havoc with
the enemy, making an attempt to take one of his pieces of artillery, but 217
218 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. failed.
Ilowever, they held their ground nobly fol three-quarters of an hour, and were
just about retiring as the main body of our troops came up. The Eighth
(colored), which had never been in battle, and which had been recruited but a
few weeks, came up and filed to the right, when they met with a most terrific
shower of musketry and shell. Gen. Seymour now came up, and pointing in front,
towards the railroad, said to Col. Fribley, commander of the Eighth, "Take your
regiment in there," - a place which was sufficiently hot to make the oldest and
most field-worn veterans tremble; and yet these men, who had never heard the
sound of a cannon before, rushed in where they commenced dropping like grass
before the sickle: still on they went without faltering, until they came within
two hundred yards of the enemy's strongest works. Hiere these brave men stood
for nearly three hours before a terrible fire, closing up as their ranks were
thinned out, fire in front, on their flank, and in the rear, without flinching
or breaking. Col. Fribley, seeing that it was impossible to hold the position,
passed along the lines to tell the officers to fire, and fall back gradually,
and was shot before he reached the end. He was shot in the chest, told the men
to carry him to the rear, and expired in a very few min. utes. Major Burritt
took command, but was also wounded in a short time. At this time Capt.
Hlamilton's battery became endangered, and he cried out to our men for God's
sake to save his battery. Our UTnited-States flag, after three sergeants had
forfeited their lives by bearing it during the fight, was planted on the battery
by Lieut. Elijah Lewis, and the men rallied around it; but the guns had been
jammed up so indiscriminately,
BATTLE OF OLUSTEE. and so close to the enemy's lines,
that the gunners were shot down as fast as they made their appearance; and the
horses, whilst they were wheeling the pieces into position, shared the same
fate. They were compelled to leave the battery, and failed to bring the flag
away. The battery fell into the enemy's hands. During the excitement, Capt.
Bailey took command, and brought out the regiment in good order. Sergt. Taylor,
Company D, who carried the battle-flag, had his right hand nearly shot off, but
grasped the colors with the left hand, and brought them out. The Seventh New
Hampshire was posted on both sides of the wagon-road, and broke, but soon
rallied, and did good execution. The line was probably one mile long, and all
along the fighting was terrific. Our artillery, where it could be worked, made
dreadful havoc on the enemy; whilst the enemy did us but very little injury with
his, with the exception of one gun, a sixty-four pound swivel, fixed on a
truck-car on the railroad, which fired grape and canister. On the whole, their
artillery was very harmless; but their musketry fearful. Up to this time,
neither the First North Carolina nor the Fifty-fourth Massachusetts had taken
any part in the fight, as they were in the rear some distance. However, they
heard the roar of battle, and were hastening to the field, when they were met by
an aide, who came riding up to the colonel of the Fifty-fourth, saying, "For
God's sake, colonel, double-quick, or the day is lost!" Of all the regiments,
every one seemed to look to the Fiftyfourth Massachusetts with the most
dependence on the field of battle. This regiment was under the command of Col.
E. N. Hallowell, who fell wounded by the side 219
220 THE NEGRQ IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. of Col. Shaw,
at Fort Wagner, and who, since his recovery, had been in several engagements, in
all of whichi he had shown himself an excellent officer, and had gained the
entire confidence of his men, who were willing to follow him wherever he chose
to lead. When the aide met these two regiments, he found them hastening on. The
First North Carolina was in light marching order; the Fifty-fourth Massachusetts
was in heavy marching order, with knapsacks, haversacks, canteens, and every
other appurtenance of the soldier. But off went every thing, and they
double-quicked on to the field. At the most critical juncture, just as the
rebels were preparing for a simultaneous charge along the whole line, and they
had captured our artillery and turned it upon us, Col. James Montgomery, Col.
HIallowell, and Lieut.-Col. Hooper formed our line of battle on right by file
into line. The Fifty-fourth Massachusetts went in first, with a cheer. They were
followed by the First North Carolina (colored). Lieut.-Col. Reed, in command,
headed the regiment, sword in hand, and charged upon the rebels. They broke when
within twenty yards of contact with our negro troops. Overpowered by numbers,
tile First North Carolina fell back in good order, and poured in a destructive
fire. Their colonel fell, mortally wounded. Major Bogle fell wounded, and two
men were killed in trying to reach his body. The Adjutant, William C. Manning,
wounded before at Malvern Hills, got a bullet in his body, but persisted in
remaining until another shot struck him. His lieutenant-colonel, learning the
fact, embraced him, and imnplored him to leave the field. The next moment the
two friends were I
BATTLE OF OLUSTEE. stretched side by side: the colonel
had received his own death-wound. But the two colored regiments had stood in the
gap, and saved the army! The Fifty-fourth Massachusetts, which, with the First
North'Carolina, may be truly said to have saved the forces from utter route,
lost eighty men. There were three color-sergeants shot down: the last one was
shot three times before he relinquished the flag of his country. Hiis name was
Samuel C. Waters, Company C, and his body sleeps where he fell. The battle-flag
carried by Sergt. Taylor was borne through the fight with the left hand, after
the right one was nearly shot off. The rebels fired into the place where the
wounded were being attended to; and their cavalry was about making a charge on
it just as the Fifty-fourth Massachusetts appeared on the field, when they
retired. Had Col. Hiallowell not seen at a glance the situation of affairs, the
Fifty-fourth Massachusetts Volunteers would have been killed or captured. When
they en tered the field with the First North Carolina, which is a brave
regiment, they (the First North Carolina) fired well while they remained; but
they gave way, thus exposing the right. On the left, the rebel cavalry were
posted; and, as the enemy's left advanced on our right, their cavalry pressed
the left. Both flanks were thus being folded up, and slaughter or capture would
have been the inevitable result. We fell back in good order, and established new
lines of battle, until we reached Sanderson. Here a scene that beggars
description was presented Wounded men lined the railroad station; and the roads
were filled with artillery, caissons, ammunition and baggage-wagons, infantry,
cavalry, and ambulances. The only organized bodies ready to repel at 221
222 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. tack were a
portion of the Fortieth Massachusetts Mounted Infantry, armed with the Spencer
repeatingrifle, the Fifty-fourth Massachusetts Volunteers, and the Seventh
Connecticut, commanded by Col. Hlawley, now governor of Connecticut. An
occurrence of thrilling interest took place during the battle, which I must not
omit to mention: it was this: Col. iHallowell ordered the color-line to be
advanced one hundred and fifty paces. Three of the colored corporals, Pease,
Palmer, and Glasgow, being wounded, and the accomplished Goodin killed, there
were four only left, - Wilkins the acting sergeant, Helman and Lenox. The colors
were perforated with bullets, and the staff was struck near the grasp of the
sergeant; but the colorguard marched steadily out, one hundred and fifty paces
to the front, with heads erect and square to the front; and the battalion
rallied around it, and fought such a fight as made Col. Hiallowell shout with
very joy, and the men themselves to ring out defiant cheers which made the pines
and marshes of Ocean Pond echo again. The attachment which the colored men form
for their officers is very great, often amounting to self-sacrifice. Thus when
Major Bogle fell wounded, one of his soldiers sprang forward to rescue him, and
bear him to the rear. At that instant a rebel sergeant fired, and wounded the
black man in the shoulder. This, however, did not force him to relinquish his
purpose, but appeared to add to his determination; and he had his arms around
the wounded officer, when a second ball passed through the soldier's head, and
he fell and expired on the body of his superior, who was taken prisoner by the
enemy.
BATTLE OF OLUSTEE. I1 Although these colored men had
never been paid off, and their families at home were in want, they were as
obedient and fought as bravely as the white troops, whose pockets contained
"greenbacks," and whose( wives and children were provided for. The Fifty-fourth
Massachusetts went into the battle with "Three cheers for Massachusetts, and
seven dollars a month." It is well known that the general in command came to the
colonel and said," The day is lost: you must do what you can to save the army
firom destruction." And nobly did they obey him. They fired their guns till
their ammunition was exhausted, and then stood with fixed bayonets till the
broken columns had time to retreat, and though once entirely outflanked, the
enemy getting sixty yards in their rear, their undaunted front and loud cheering
caused the enemy to pause, and allowed them time to change front. They occupied
the position as rear guard all the way back to Jacksonville; and, whereever was
the post of danger, there was the Fifty-fourth to be found. When the forces
arrived at Jacksonville, they there learned that the train containing the
wounded was at TenMile Station, where it had been left, owing to the breaking
down of the engine. The Fifty-fourth Massachusetts, fatigued and worn out as it
was, was despatched at once, late at night, to the assistance of the disabled
train. Arriving at Ten-Mile Station, they found that the only way to bring the
wounded with them was to attach ropes to the cars, and let the men act as motive
power. Thus the whole train of cars containing the wounded from the battle of
Olustee was dragged a distance of ten miles by that brave colored regiment. All
accounts give the ne 223
224 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. groes great
praise for gallantry displayed at this battle. Even the correspondent of "The
New-York Herald" gives this emphatic testimony "The First North Caro lina and
the Fifty-fourth Massachusetts, of the colored troops, did admirably. The First
North Carolina held the positions it was placed in with the greatest tenacity,
and inflicted heavy loss on the enemy. It was cool and steady, and never
flinched for a moment. The Fifty fourth sustained the reputation they had gained
at Wag ner, and bore themselves like soldiers throughout the battle." A letter
from Beaufort, dated Feb. 26, from a gentle man who accompanied Gen. Seymour's
expedition, has the following passage relative to the conduct of the
Fifty-fourth in the repulse ill Florida: "A word about the terrible defeat in
Florida. We have been driven from Lake City to within seven miles of
Jacksonville,- fifty-three miles. The rebels allowed us to penetrate, and then,
with ten to our one, cut us off; meaning to' bag' us; and, had it not been for
the glori ous Fiftyfourth Miassachusetts, the whole brigade would have been
captured or annihilated. This was the only regiment that rallied, broke the
rebel ranks, and saved us. The Eighth United-States (colored) lost their flag
tivice, and the'ifty-fourth recaptured it each time: They had lost, in killed
and missing, about three hundred and fifty. They would not retreat when ordered,
but charged with the most fearful desperation, driving the enemy before them,
and turning their left flank. If this regi ment has not won glory enough to have
shoulder-straps, where is there one that ever did?" I t, I
CHIAPTER XXX. BATTLE OF POISON SPRINGS, ARKANSAS.
Hard-fought Battle. - Bravery of the Kansas Colored Troops.- They die but will
not yield. - Outnumbered by the Rebels.- Another severe Battle.- The heroic
Negro, after being wounded, fights till he dies. THE battle of Poison Springs,
Ark., between one thousand Union and eight thousand rebel troops, was one of the
most severe conflicts of the war. Six hul. dred of the Union forces were
colored, and from Kansas, some of them having served under old John Brown during
thile great struggle in that territory. These black men, as it will be seen,
bore the brunt of the fight, and never did men show more determined bravery than
was exhibited on this occasion. They went into the battle singing the following
characteristic song: - "Old John Brown's body lies a mouldering in the grave,
While weep the sons of bondage, whom he ventured to save; But though he lost his
life in struggling for the slave, His soul is marching on. Glory, glory,
Hallelujah! Glory, glory, Hallelujah! Glory, glory, Hallelujah! His soul is
marching on! John Brown was a hero, undaunted, true, and brave, And Kansas knew
his valor, when he fought her rights to save; And now, though the grass grows
green above his grave, His soul is marching on. 15 225
226 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. He captured
Harper's Ferry with his nineteen men so few, And he frightened' Old Virginny'
till she trembled through and through: They hung him for a traitor, themselves a
traitor crew, For his soul is marching on; &c. John Brown was John the
Baptist, of the Christ we are to see,Christ, who of the bondman shall the
Liberator be; And soon throughout the sunny South the slaves shall all be free,
For his soul is marching on, &c. The conflict that he heralded, he looks
from heaven to view, On the army of the Union, with its flag, red, white, and
blue; And heaven shall ring with anthems o'er the deed they mean to do, For his
soul is marching on, &c. Ye soldiers of freedom then strike, while strike ye
may, The death-blow of oppression in a better time and way; For the dawn of old
John Brown has brightened into day, And his soul is marching on. Glory, glory,
Hallelujah! Glory, glory, Hallelujah! Glory, glory, Hallelujah! And his soul is
marching on." The following graphic description of the battle will be read with
thrilling interest: "Offcial Report of Major Richard G. Ward, commanding First
Kiansas Colored Regiment at the battle of Poison Springs. " HEADQUARTERS FIRST
KANSAS COLORED VOLS., CAMIDEN, Ark., April 20, 1864. " Col. J. M. Williams,
commanding Escort to Forage-train. "COLONEL, -In conformity with the
requirements of the circular issued by you, April 19, 1864, I submit the
following report of the conduct of that portion of the escort wliich I had the
honor to command, and of the part taken by them in the action of the 18th inst:
- I t
BATTLE OF POISON SPRINGS. "I marched from the camp on
White-Oak Creek, with the six companies left with me as rear-guard, about seven
o'clock, A.M. When I arrived at the junction of the Washington Road, I found the
Eighteenth Iowa Infantry and a detachment of cavalry waiting to relieve me as
rear-guard. At this moment I received your order to press forward to the front,
as your advance was skirmishing with the enemy. Upon arriving, agreeably to your
order, I placed one wing of this regiment on each side of the section of Rabb's
Battery, to support it, and awaited further developments. "After your cavalry
had ascertained the position of the enemy's force on our right flank, and Lieut.
Haines had planted one of his pieces in a favorable position, I placed Companies
A, B, E, and H in position to support it. We had hardly got into position here,
before our cavalry were forced back upon our line by an overwhelming force of
the enemy. Lieut. Hienderson, commanding detachment Sixth Kansas (than whom a
braver officer never existed), was severely wounded, and I ordered Corp.
Wallahan, Company M, Sixth Kansas, to form his men on my right. He had scarcely
formed them, ere Lieut. Mitchell, commanding detachment Second Kansas Cavalry,
was also driven in, when he was placed upon the extreme right under your
personal supervision. "The line of battle was now nearly in the form of the
segment of a circle, the convex side being outward, or toward the enemy.
Companies C and I being on the north side of the road facing toward the east;
Companies D and F on the south side of the road, faicing in the same direction,
whilst on my extreme right the men were drawn up in line facing due south. It
was now about half past eleven o'clock, A.M. These dispositions were 227
228 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. scarcely made
ere the enemy opened a severe and well directed fire from a six-gun battery, at
the distance of about one thousand yards. This battery was near the road, due
east of our line. At the same time a howitzer battery, reported to me as having
four guns, opened on the south opposite my right, at a distance of six or seven
hundred yards. Although this was much the severest artillery fire that any of
the men had ever before been subjected to, and many of the men were thus under
fire for the first time, they were as cool as veterans, and pa tiently awaited
the onset of the enemy's infantry. "Just after twelve o'clock, the enemy's
batteries slack ened their fire, and their infantry advanced to the attack. From
the position of the ground, it was useless to deliver a fire until the enemy
were within one hundred yards. I therefore reserved my fire until their first
line was within that distance, when I gave the order to fire. For about a
quarter of an hour, it seemed as though the enemy were determined to break my
lines, and capture the guns; but their attempts were fruitless, and they were
compelled to fall precipitately back, not, however, before they had disabled
more than half of the gunners belonging to the gun on the right. "Again they
opened their infernal cross-fires with their batteries, and through the smoke I
could see them massing their infantry for another attack. I immediately applied
to you for more Inen. "Companies G and K were sent me. I placed Company K upon
the extreme right (where the cavalry had rested, but which had now retired), and
Company G upon the left of Company B. Shortly after these dispositions were
made, the enemy again advanced, this time in two col ,t4ns yelling like fiends.
Lieut. Macy, of CQmpany C,
BATTLE OF POISON SPRINGS. whom you had sent out with
skirmishers from the left, was driven in; and I placed him, with his small
command, between Companies G and B. At this moment, yourself and Lieut. Hiaines
arrived on the right, and I reported to you the condition of the gun, only two
men being left to man it, when you ordered it to the rear. - Just as the boys
were preparing to limber, a large body of the enemy was observed making for the
gun in close column, whereupon private Alonzo Heudshaw, of the Second Indiana
Battery, himself double-loaded the piece with canister, and poured into the
advancing column a parting salute at the distance of about three hundred yards,
and then limbered. The effect was terrific. Our infantry redoubled their fire,
and again the massed columns sullenly retired. " Three different times the enemy
were thus repulsed; and, as they were massing for the fourth charge, I informed
you that I believed it would be impossible to hold my position without more men
on my right and centre. You replied that I should have them if they could be
spared from other points. I held my position until you returned; when, seeing
your horse fall, I gave you mine for the purpose of going to the Eighteenth Iowa
to form them in a favorable position for my line to fall back upon. Agreeably to
your order to hold the ground at any and all events until this could be done, I
encouraged the men to renew their exertions, and repel the coming charge,
intending, if I succeeded, to take that opportunity of falling back, instead of
being compelled to do so under fire. My right succeeded in checking the advance;
but, my left being outflanked at the same time that my left-centre was
sustaining the attack of ten times their number, I ordered to fall back slowly
toward 229
230 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. -the train,
changing front toward the left, to prevent the enemy from coming up in my rear.
We here made a stand of about ten minutes, when I perceived that the enemy had
succeeded in flanking my extreme right, and that I was placed in a position to
receive a cross-fire from their two lines. I was then compelled, in order to
save even a fragment of the gallant regiment which for nearly two hours had,
unaided, sustained itself against Price's whole army, to order a retreat.
"Although a portion retired precipitately, the greater portion of them kept up a
continued fire the whole length of the train. I ordered the men to retire behind
the line of the Iowa Eighteenth, and form; but, alas! four companies had lost
their gallant commanders, and were without an officer. By your aid, and the
assistance of the few unharmed officers, I succeeded in collecting a few of the
command, and placing them on the left of the Iowa Eighteenth. As they were
slowly forced backward, others took position in the line, and did all that could
be done to check the advance of the overwhelming forces of the enemy. I sent a
small force to assist Lieut. Haines in his gallant and manly efforts to save his
guns; and, had it not been for the worn condition of the horses, I believe he
would have succeeded. Accompanyinlg this, I send the reports of company
commanders of the losses sustained by their respective companies. It will be
noticed that the heaviest punishment was inflicted upon Company G, from the fact
that it was more exposed to the galling cross-fires of the enemy. "You will see
that I went into action with about four hundred and fifty enlisted men, and
thirteen officers of the line. Seven out of that gallant thirteen were killed or
wounded. Five are reported dead on the field: Capt. II
BATTLE OF POISON SPRINGS. A. J. Armstrong, Company D;
Lieut. B. Hitchcock, Com pany G; Lieuts. Charles J. Coleman and Joseph B.
Samuels, Company H; and Lieut. John Topping, Company B. The cheerful offering of
the lives of such noble men needs not the assistance of any studied panegyric to
bespeak for it that spirit of lasting admiration with which their memories will
ever be enshrined. "Four companies fought their way to the rear, without a
commissioned officer. One hundred and thirteen men are killed, and sixty-nine
wounded, - some of them mortally. I cannot refrain from mentioning the names of
Capt. B. W. Welch, Company K, and Lieut. E. Q. Macy, Company C, both of whom
were wounded, as among the number of sufferers who have earned the thanks and
merit the sympathy of the loyal and generous everywhere. Any attempt to mention
the names of any soldier in particular would be unjust, unless I mentioned all;
for every one, as far as I could see, did his duty coolly, nobly, and bravely.
On the right, where the enemy made so many repeated attempts to break my line, I
saw officers and men engaged in taking the cartridges from the bodies of the
dead; and, upon inquiring, found that their ammunition was nearly expended. "The
brave and soldier-like Topping was killed in the first charge; and the gallant
young Coleman, commanding Company H, was shot down in the second charge. At what
particular period of the engagement the other officers fell, I am unable to
state. To Capt. John R. Gratton, Company C; Capt. William IH. Smallwood, Company
G; Lient. R. L. Harris, Company I: Lieut. B. G. Jones, Company A; Lieut. John
Overdier, Company E; Lieut. S. S. Crepps, Company F; and Adjutant William C.
Gibbons, I would tender my heartfelt thanks, for the 231 I
232 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. faithful,
efficient, and manly performance of the most arduous duties, while subjected to
the hottest fire. "The loss in arms and clothing is quite serious; but, from the
exhausted state of the men, it is strange that as many of them brought in their
arms and accoutrements as did. Out of seventy-eight hours preceding the action,
sixty-three hours were spent by the entire command on duty, besides a heavy
picket-guard having been furnished for the remaining fifteen hours. You are also
reminded that the rations were of necessity exceedingly short for more than a
week previous to the battle. "We were obliged to bring our wounded away the best
we could, as the rebels were seen shooting those who fell into their hands. The
men who brought in the wounded were obliged to throw away their arms but the
most who did so waited till they reached the swamps, and then sunk them in the
bayous. "I am, colonel, very respectfully, "Your obedient servant, "R. G. WARD,
"Major First Kansas Colored Volunteers." "Since this Report was published,
official information has been received at Fort Smith, that Capt. Armstrong and
Lieut. Hitchcock are prisoners of war in Arkansas, and not killed as reported.
"Yours, "J. BOWLES, " Lieutenant- Colonel First Kansas Volunteers." Eight days
later, the same colored regiment had a fight with a superior force in numbers of
the rebels; and the subjoined account of the engagement will show with what
determination they fought. . t , I
BATTLE OF POISON- SPRING. "On the 29th, we skirmished
in the forenoon. In the afternoon, the venturing-out of a detachment beyond the
distance ordered brought on a severe though short general engagement. At least
one hundred and twenty of the rebel cavalry made a charge upon this detachment
of twenty-four men. Before we could bring up re-enforcements, these fearfully
disproportioned parties were engaged ill a desperate hand-to-hand encounter. I
was on the field, doing, with the other officers, the best we could to bring up
re-enforcemenits. There was no flinching, no hesitation, or trembling limbs
among the men; but fierce determination flashing in their eyes, and exhibiting
an eager, passionate haste to aid their comrades, and vindicate the manhood of
their race. The air was rent with their yells, as they rushed on, and the
difficulty manifested was in holding them well in rather than in faltering.
Among the detachment cut ofif; of whom only six escaped unhurt, nothing I have
ever seen, read, or heard in the annals of war, surpasses the desperate personal
valor exhibited by each and every man. Bayonets came in bloody, as did the
stocks of guns; and the last charge was found gone from cartridge-boxes. "During
the fight, one poor fellow received a mortal wound, but would not go to the
rear. He told his officer that he could not live, but would die fighting for the
flag of liberty; and continued to load and discharge his rifle until he fell
dead on the field of glory. "The ball had crushed a vital part, He could not
long survive; But, with a brave and loyal heart, For victory still would strive;
233
234 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. His
rifle'gainst the traitor foe With deadly aim would ply; And, till his life-blood
ceased to flow, Fight on for liberty. His skin was of the ebon hue, His heart
was nobly brave: To country, flag, and freedom true, He would not live a slave.
His rifle flashed, - a traitor falls: While death is in his eye, He bravely to
his comrades calls, 'Fight on for liberty!' He looked upon his bannered sign, He
bowed his noble head,'Farewell, beloved flag of mine!' Then fell among the dead.
His comrades will remember well The hero's battle-cry, As in the arms of death
he fell, - ' Fight on for liberty!' And still for liberty and laws His comrades
will contend, Till victory crowns the righteous cause, And tyrant power shall
end. Though low in earth the martyr lies, Still rings his battle-cry: From hill
to hill the echo flies, - ' Fight on for liberty!'" i 1,
CIHAPTER XXXI. THE MASSACRE AT FORT PILLOW. Assault
and Capture of the Fort. - "No Quarter." - Rebel Atrocities. - Gens. Forrest and
Chalmers.- Firing upon Flags of Truce. - Murder of Men, Women, and Children.-
Night after the Assault.- Buried Alive.- Morning after the Massacre. NOTHING in
the history of the Rebellion has equalled in inhumanity and atrocity the horrid
butchery at Fort Pillow, Ky., on the 13th of April, 1864. In no other school
than slavery could human beings have been trained to such readiness for
cruelties like these. Accustomed to brutality and bestiality all their lives, it
was easy for them to perpetrate the atrocities which will startle the civilized
foreign world, as they have awakened the indignation of our own people. We have
gleaned the facts of the fight from authentic sources, and they may be relied
upon as truthful. The rebels, under Forrest, appeared, and drove in the pickets
about sunrise on Tuesday morning. The garrison of the fort consisted of about
two hundred of the Thirteenth Tennessee Volunteers, and four hundred negro
artillery, all under command of Major Booth: the gunboat "No. 7" was also in the
river. The rebels first attacked the outer forts, and, in several attempts to
charge, were repulsed. They were constantly re-enforced, and extended their
lines to the river on both sides of the fort. The garrison in the two outer
forts 235
236 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. was at length
overpowered by superior numbers, and about noon evacuated them, and retired to
the fort on the river. Here the fight was maintained with great obstinacy, and
continued till about four, P.M. The approach to the fort from the rear is over a
gentle declivity, cleared, and fully exposed to a raking fire from two sides of
the fort. About thirty yards from the fort is a deep ravine, running all along
the front, and so steep at the bottom as to be hidden from the fort, and not
commanded by its guns. The rebels charged with great boldness down the
declivity, and faced, without blanching, a murderous fire from the guns and
smallarms of the fort, and crowded into the ravine; where they were sheltered
from fire by the steep bank, which had been thus left by some unaccountable
neglect or ignorance. Here the rebels organized for a final charge upon the
fort, after sending a flag of truce with a demand for surrender, which was
refused. The approach from the ravine was up through a deep, narrow gully, and
the steep embankments of the fort. The last charge was made about four, P.M., by
the whole rebel force, and was successful after a most desperate and gallant
defence. The rebel army was estimated at from two thousand to four thousand, and
succeeded by mere force of numbers. The gunboat had not been idle, but, guided
by signals from the fort, poured upon the rebels a constant stream of shot and
shell. She fired two hundred and sixty shells, and, as testified to by those who
could see, with marvellous precision and with fatal effect. Major Booth, who was
killed near the close of the fight, conducted the defence with great coolness,
skill, and gallantry. His last signal to tile boat was, " We are hard pressed
and shall be.overpowered." He I I i
THE MASSACRE AT FORT PILLOW. refused to surrender,
however, and fought to the last. By the uniform and voluntary testimony of the
rebel officers, as well as the survivors of the fight, the negroartillery
regiments fought with the bravery and coolness of veterans, and served the guns
with skill and precision. They did not falter nor flinch, until, at the last
charge, when it was evident they would be overpowered, they broke, and fled
toward the river; and here commenced the most barbarous and cruel outrages that
ever the fiendishness of rebels has perpetrated during the war. After the rebels
were in undisputed possession of the fort, and the survivors had surrendered,
they commenced the indiscriminate butchery of all the Federal soldiery. The
colored soldiers threw down their guns, and raised their arms, in token of
surrender; but not the least attention was paid to it. They continued to shoot
down all they found. A number of them, finding no quarter was given, ran over
the bluff to the river, and tried to conceal themselves under the bank and in
the bushes, where they were pursued by the rebel savages, whom they implored to
spare their lives. Their appeals were made in vain; and they were all shot down
in cold blood, and, in full sight of the gunboat, chased and shot down like
dogs. In passing up the bank of the river, fifty dead might be counted, strewed
along. One had crawled into a hollow log, and was killed in it another had got
over the bank into the river, and had got on a board that run out into the
water. He lay on it on his face, with his feet in the water. He lay there, when
exposed, stark and stiff. Several had tried to hide in crevices made by the
falling bank, and could not be seen without difficulty; but they were singled
out, and 237
238 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. killed. From
the best information to be had, the white soldiers were, to a very considerable
extent, treated in the same way. D. W. Harrison, one of the Thirteenth Tennessee
on board, says, that, after the surrender, he was below the bluff, and one of
the rebels presented a pistol to shoot him. He told him he had surrendered, and
requested him not to fire. He spared him, and directed him to go up the bluff to
the foirt. Harrison asked him to go before him, or he would be shot by others;
but he told him to go along. He started, and had not proceeded far before he met
a rebel, who presented his pistol. Harrison begged him not to fire; but, paying
no attention to his request, he fired, and shot him through the shoulder; and
another shot him in the leg. He fell; and, while he lay unable to move, another
came along, and was about to fire again, when Harrison told him he was badly
wounded twice, and implored him not to fire. He asked Harrison if he had any
money. He said he had a little' money, and a watch. The rebel took firom him his
watch and ninety dollars in money, and left him. Harrison is, probably, fatally
wounded. Several such cases have been related to me; and I think, to a great
extent, the whites and negroes were indiscriminately murdered. The rebel
Tennesseeans have about the same bitterness against Tennesseeans in the Federal
army, as against the negroes. It was told by a rebel officer that Gen. Forrest
shot one of his men, and cut another with his sabre, who were shooting down
prisoners. It may be so; but he is responsible for the conduct of his men. Gen.
Chalmers stated publicly, while on the Platte Valley, that, though he did not
encourage or countenance his men in shooting down negro captives, yet it was
right and justifiable. I
THE MASSACRE AT FORT PILLOW. The negro corporal, Jacob
Wilson, who was picked up below Fort Pillow,.liad a narrow escaipe. Hie was down
on the river-bank, and, seeing that no quarter was shown, stepped into the water
so that he lay partly under it. A rebel coming along asked him what was the
matter: he said he was badly wounded; and the rebel, after taking from his
pocket all the money lie had, left him. It happened to be near by a flat-boat
tied to the bank, and about three o'clock in the morning. When all was quiet,
Wilson crawled into it, and got three more wounded comrades also into it, and
cut loose. The boat floated out into the channel, and was found ashore some
miles below. The wounded negro soldiers aboard feigned themselves dead until
Union soldiers came along. The atrocities committed almost exceed belief; and,
but for the fact that so, many confirm the stories, we could not credit them.
One man, already badly wounded, asked of a scoundrel who was firing at him, to
spare his life. " No: damn you!" was the reply. "You fight with niggers!" and
forthwith discharged two more balls into him. One negro was made to assist in
digging a pit to bury the dead in, and was himself cast in among others, and
buried. Five are known to have been buried alive: of these, two dug themselves
out, and are now alive, and in the hospital. Daniel Tyler, of Company B,. was
shot three times, and struck on the head, knocking out his eye. After this, he
was buried; but, not liking his quarters, dug out. HIe laughs over his
adventures, and says-he is one of the best "dug-outs " in the world. Dr. Fitch
says he saw twenty white soldiers paraded in line on the bank of the river; and,
when in line, the rebels fired upon and killed all but one, who ran to the 239
240 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. river, and
hid under a log, -and in that condition was fired at a number of times, and
wounded. He says that Major Bradford also ran down to the river, and, after he
told them that he had surrendered, more than fifty shots were fired at him. He
then jumped into the river, and swam out a little ways, and whole volleys were
fired at him there without hitting himn. He returned to the shore, and meeting,
as the doctor supposes, some officer, was protected; but he heard frequent
threats from the rebels that they would kill him. "Yesterday afternoon," says
"The Cairo News" of April 16, "we visited the United-States Hospital at Mound
City, and had an interview with the wounded men from Fort Pillow. "The
Fort-Pillow wounded are doing much better than could be expected from the
terrible nature of their wounds. But one, William Jones, had died, though
Adjutant Learing and Lieut. John H. Porter cannot possibly long survive. Of the
whole number, - fifty-two,all except two were cut or shot after they had
surrendered! They all tell the same story of the rebel barbarities; and
listening to a recital of the terrible scenes at the fort makes one's blood run
cold. They say they were able to keep the rebels at bay for several hours,
notwithstanding the immense disparity of numbers; and, but for their treachery
in creeping up under the walls of the fort while a truce was pending, would have
held out until' The Olive Branch' arrived with troops, with whose assistance
they would have defeated Chalmers. "So well were our men protected behind their
works, that our loss was very trifling before the rebels scaled the walls, and
obtained possession. As soon as they saw the Rebels inside the walls, the
Unionists ceased
THE MASSACRE AT FORT PILLOW. firing, knowing that
further resistance was useless; but the Rebels continued firing, crying out,'
Shoot them, shoot them! Show them no quarter!' "The Unionists, with one or two
exceptions, had thrown down their arms in token of surrender, and therefore
could offer no resistance. In vain they held up their hands, and begged their
captors to spare their lives. But they were appealing to fiends; and the
butchery continued until, out of near six hundred men who composed the garrison,
but two hundred and thirty remained alive: and of this number, sixty-two were
wounded, and nine died in a few hours after. "Capt. Bradford, of the First
Alabama Cavalry, was an especial object of rebel hatred, and his death was fully
determined upon before the assault was made. After he had surrendered, he was
basely shot; but, having his revolver still at his side, he emptied it among a
crowd of rebels, bringing three of the scoundrels to the ground. The massacre
was acquiesced in by most of the rebel officers, Chalmers himself expressly
declaring that'home-made Yankees and negroes should receive no quarter."' The
following is an extract from the Report of the Committee on the Conduct of the
War on the Fort-Pillow Massacre: — "It will appear from the testimony that was
taken, that the atrocities committed at Fort Pillow were not the results of
passion elicited by the heat of conflict, but were the results of a policy
deliberately decided upon, and unhesitatingly announced. Even if the
itlcertainty of the fate of those officers and men belonging to colored
regiments, who have heretofore been taken pris. 16 24.1
242 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. oners by the
rebels, has failed to convince the authorities of our Government of this fact,
the testimony herewith submitted must convince even the most sceptical, that it
is the intention of the rebel authorities not to recognize the officers and men
of our colored regiments as entitled to the treatment accorded by all civilized
nations to prisoners of war. "The declarations of Forrest and his officers, both
before and after the capture of Fort Pillow, as testified to by such of our men
as have escaped after being taken by him; the threats contained in the various
demands for surrender made at Paducah, Columbus, and other places; the renewal
of the massacre the morning after the capture of Fort Pillow; the statements
made by the rebel officers to the officers of our gunboats who received the few
survivors at Fort Pillow,all this proves most conclusively the policy they have
determined to adopt. " It was at Fort Pillow that the brutality and cruelty of
the rebels were most fearfully exhibited. The garrison there, according to the
last returns received at headquarters, amounted to tenofficers and five hundred
and thirty-eight enlisted men, of whom two hundred and sixty-two were colored
troops, comprising one battalion of the Sixteenth United-States Heavy Artillery,
formerly the First Alabama Artillery of colored troops, under the command of
Major L. F. Booth; one section of the Second Light Artillery (colored); and a
battalion of the Thirteenth Tennessee Cavalry (white), commanded by Major A. F.
Bradford. Major Booth was the ranking officer, and was in command of the fort.
"Immediately after the second flag of truce retired, the rebels made a rush from
the positions they had so
THE MASSACRE AT FORT PILLOW. treacherously gained, and
obtained possession of the fort, raising the cry of'No quarter.' But little
opportunity was allowed for resistance. Our troops, white and black, threw down
their arms, and sought to escape by running down the steep bluff near the fort,
and secreting themselves behind trees and logs in the brush, and under the
brush; some even jumping into the river, leaving only their heads above the
water. Then followed a scene of cruelty and murder without parallel in civilized
warfare, which needed but the tomahawk and scalping-knife to exceed the worst
atrocities ever committed by savages. "The rebels commenced an indiscriminate
slaughter, sparing neither age nor sex, white nor black, soldier nor civilian.
The officers and men seemed to vie with each other in the devilish work. Men,
women, and children, wherever found, were deliberately shot down, beaten, and
hacked with sabres. Some of the children not more than ten years old were forced
to stand up by their murderers while being shot. The sick and wounded were
butchered without mercy; the rebels even entering the hospital-buildings, and
dragging them out to be shot, or killing them as they lay there unable to offer
the least resistance. All over the hillside the work of murder was going on.
Numbers of our men were collected together in lines or groups, and deliberately
shot. Some were shot while in the river; while others on the bank were shot, and
their bodies kicked into the water, many of them still living, but unable to
make exertions to save themselves from drowning. "Some of the rebels stood upon
the top of the hill, or a short distance from its side, and called to our
soldiers to come up to them, and, as they approached, shot them 243
244 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. down in cold
blood; and, if their guns or pistols missed fire, forced them to stand there
until they were again prepared to fire. All around were heard cries of' No
quarter, no quarter!''Kill the d-d niggers, shoot them down!' All who asked for
mercy were answered by the most cruel taunts and sneers. Some were spared for a
time, only to be murdered under circumstances of greater cruelty. "No cruelty
which the most fiendish malignity could devise was omitted by these murderers.
One white soldier who was wounded in the leg so as to be unable to walk was made
to stand up while his tormentors shot him. Others who were wounded, and unable
to stand up, were held up and again shot. One negro who had been ordered by a
rebel officer to hold his horse was killed by him when he remonstrated; another,
a mere child, whom an officer had taken up behind him on his horse, was seen by
Gen. Chalmers, who at once ordered him to put him down and shoot him, which was
done. "The huts and tents in which many of the wounded sought shelter were set
on fire, both on that night and the next morning, while the wounded were still
in them; those only escaping who were able to get themselves out, or who could
prevail on others less injured to help them out: and some of these thus seeking
to escape the flames were met by these ruffians, and brutally shot down, or had
their brains beaten out. One man was deliberately fastened down to the floor of
a tent, face upwards, by means of nails driven through his clothing and into the
boards under him, so that he could not possibly escape4 and then the tent was
set on fire. Another was nailed to the sides of a building outside of' the fort,
and then the building was set on fire and burned. The
THE MASSACRE AT FORT PILLOW. charred remains of five
or six bodies were afterwards found, all but one so much disfigured and consumed
by the flames, that they could not be identified; and the identification of that
one is not absolutely certain, al though there can hardly be a doubt that it was
the body of Lieut. Albertson, Quartermaster of the Thirteenth Virginia Cavalry,
and a native of Tennessee. Several witnesses who saw the remains, and who were
personally acquainted with him while living here, testified it to be their firm
belief that it was his body that was thus treated. "These deeds of murder and
cruelty closed when night came on, only to be renewed the next morning, when the
demons carefully sought among the dead lying about in all directions for any
other wounded yet alive; and those they found were deliberately shot. Scores of
the dead and wounded were found there the day after the massacre by the men from
some of our gunboats, who were permitted to go on shore, and collect the
wounded, and bury the dead. "The rebels themselves had made a pretence of
burying a great many of their victims; but they had merely thrown them, without
the least regard to care or decency, in the trenches and ditches about the fort,
or little hol. lows and ravines on the hillside, covering them but partially
with earth. Portions of heads and faces were found protruding through the earth
in every direction; and even when your Committee visited the spot, two weeks
afterwards, although parties of men had been sent on shorefi'om time to time to
bury the bodies unburied, and re-bury the others, and were even then engaged in
the same work, we found the evidences of the murder and cruelty still most
painfully apparent. 245
246 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. "We saw
bodies still unburied, at some distance from the fort, of some sick men who had
been met fleeing from the hospital, and beaten down and brutally murdered, and
their bodies left where they had fallen. We could still see the faces and hands
and feet of men, white and black, protruding out of the ground, whose graves had
not been reached by those engaged in re-interring the victims of the massacre;
and, although a great deal of rain had fallen within the preceding two weelks,
the ground, more especially on the side and at the foot of the bluff where most
of the murders had been committed, was still discolored by the blood of our
brave but unfortunate soldiers; and the logs and trees showed but too plainly
the evidences of the atrocities perpetrated. "Many other instances of equally
atrocious cruelty might be mentioned; but your Committee feel compelled to
refrain from giving here more of the heart-siclkening details, and refer to the
statements contained in the voluminous testimony herewith submitted. These
statements were obtained by them fromn eye-witnesses and sufferers. Many of them
as they were examined by your Committee were lying upon beds of pain and
suffering; some so feeble that their lips could with difficulty frame the words
by which they endeavored to convey some idea of the cruelties which had been
inflicted on them, and which they had seen inflicted on others." When the
murderers returned, the day after the capture, to renew their fiendish work upon
the wounded and dying, they found a young and beautiful mulatto woman searching
among the dead for the body of her husband. She was the daughter of a wealthy
and influ. ential rebel residing at Columbus. With her husband, this woman was
living near the fort when our forces oc
THE MASSACRE AT FORT PILLOW. cupied it, and joined the
Union men to assist in holding the place. Going from body to body with all the
earnest ness with which love could inspire an affectionate heart, she at last
found the object of her search. Hle was not dead; but both legs were broken. The
wife had succeeded in getting him out from among the piles of dead, and was
bathing his face, and giving him water to drink from a pool near by, which had
been replenished by the rain that fell a few hours before. At this moment she
was seen by the murderous band; and the cry was at once raised," Kill the wench,
kill her!" The next moment the sharp crack of a musket was heard, and the angel
of mercy fell a corpse onl the body of her wounded husband, who was Soon after
knocked in the head by the butt-end of the same weapon. Though these revolting
murders were done under the immediate eye of Gen. Chalmers, the whole was
planned and carried out by Gen. Forrest whose inhumanity has never been
surpassed in the history of civilized or even barbarous warfare. 247
CHIIAPTER XXXII. INJUSTICE TO COLORED TROOPS. The Pay
of the Men. - Government refuses to keep its Promise. - Ef forts of Gov. Andrew
to hlave Justice done.- Complaint of the Men. -Mutiny. - Military Murder.
-Everlasting Shame. WHEN the War Department commenced recruiting colored men as
soldiers in MIassachusetts, New Orlean)s, a nd Hilton H ead, it was done with
the promise that these me n should receive the same pay, clothing, and treatment
that white soldiers did. The same was promised at Camp William Penn, at
Philadelphia. After several regiments had been raised and put in the field, the
WarV Department decided to pay them but ten dollars per month, without clothing.
The Fifty-fourth MIassacliusetts Volunteers, and the Fifty-filt'thi, were both
in Soutll Carolina when th is decision was made; yet the Government held on t o
the menl who had thus been obtained under false pretences. Dissatisfaction
showed itself as s o o n as this was known among the colored troops. Still the
blacks performed their duty, hoping that Congress would see th at justice was
done to them. q'lie men refu sed to receive less than was their just due when
the paymaster c ame round, as the following will show: - " IILTON IHEAD, S.C.,
Feb. 6,1864. "Samuel Hlarrison, Chaplain of thle Fifty-fourtll Rcgi. ment
Massachusetts Volunteers (colored tioops), aslks pay at the usual rate of
chaplains,- one lhunidred dollars 248 711
INJUSTICE TO COLORED TROOPS. per month and two
rations, which, he being of African descent, I decline paying, under Act of
Congress, July 17, 1862, which authorizes the employment of persons of Afi'ican
descent in the army. The chaplain declines receiving any thing less of "TEN
EYKE, Paymaster, United-States Army." It was left, however, for Massachusetts to
take the lead, both by her governor, and by her colored soldiers in the field,
to urge upon the Congress and the Adminis tration the black man's claims. To the
honor of John A. Andrew, the patriotic Chief Magistrate of the Bay State during
the Rebellion, justice was demanded again and again. The following will show his
feelings upon the subject His Excellency Gov. Andrew, in a letter dated
Executive Department, Boston, Aug. 24, and addressed to Mr. Frederick Johnson,
an officer in the regiment, says, " I have this day received your letter of the
10th of August, and in reply desire, in the first place, to express to you the
lively interest with which I lhave watched every step of the Fifty-fourth
Regiment since it left MIassachusetts, and the feelings of pride and admiration
with which I have learned and read the accounts of the heroic conduct of the
regiment in the attack upon Fort Wagner, when you and your brave soldiers so
well proved their manhood, and showed themselves to be true soldiers of
Massachusetts. As to the matter inquired about in your letter, you may rest
assured that I shall not rest until you shall have secured all of your rights,
and that I have no doubt whatever of ultimate success. I 249 .<< III 11
250 TIlE NEGRO IN TIHE AMERICAN REBELLION. have no
doubt, by law, you are entitled to the same pay as other soldiers; and, on the
authority of the Secretary of War, I promised that you should be paid and
treated in all respects like other soldiers of Massachusetts. Till this is done,
I feel that my promise is dishonored by the Government. The whole difficulty
arises fiomn a misapprehension, the correction of which will no doubt be made as
soon as I can get the subject fully exaniined by the Secretary of War. "I have
the honor to be your obedient servant, "JOHN A. ANDIEW, " Governor of
3fassachusetts." The subjoined letter, from a soldier of the Fifty-fourth
Mlassachusetts Volunteers, needs no explanation: "We are still anticipating the
arrival of the day when the Government will do justice to the Fifty-fourthl and
Fifty-fifth Regiments, and pay us what is justly our due. "We have fought like
men; we have worked like men; we have been ready at every call of dutty, and
thus have proved ourselves to be men: but still we are refused the thirteen
dollars per month. "Oh, what a shame it is to be treated thus I Some of us have
wives and little children, who are looking for succor and support from their
husbands and fathers; but, alas! they look in vain. The answer to the question,'
When shall we be able to assist them?' is left wholly to the Congress of the
United States. "1What will the famnilies of those poor comrades of ours who fell
at James's Island, Fort Wagner, and Olustee, do? They must suffer; for their
husbands and fathers have gone the way of all the earth. They have Th vai -II 7,
INJUSTICE TO COLORED TROOPS. gone to join that number
that John saw, and to rest at the right hand of God. "Our hearts pine in bitter
anguish when we look back to our loved ones at home, and we are compelled to
shed many a briny tear. We have dffered our lives a sacrifice for a country that
has not the magnajimity to treat us as men. All that we ask is the rights of
other soldiers, the liberty of other free men. If we cannot have these, give us
an honorable discharge from the United-States service, and we will not ask for
pay. "We came here to fight for liberty and country, and not for money (we would
scorn to do that); but they promised us, if we would enlist, they would give us
thirteen dollars per month. "It was all false. They only wanted to get the
halter over our heads, and then say,' Get out if you can.' "Sir, the
Fifty-fourth and Fifty-fifth Regiments would sooner consent to fight for the
whole three years, gratis, than to be put upon the footing of contrabands. "It
is not that we think ourselves any better than they; for we are not. We know
that God' hath made of one blood all nations of men for to dwell on all the face
of the earth;' but we have enlisted as Massachusetts Volunteers, and we will not
surrender that proud position, come what may." Sergt. William Walker, of Company
A, Third South Carolina colored troops, feeling that he and his associates were
unjustly dealt with, persuaded his company to go to their captain's tent, and
stack their muskets, and refuse duty till paid. They did so, and the following
was the result: 0 251
252 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. CONDEMNED AND
SHOT FOR MUTINY. "Sergt. William Walker, of Company A, Third South-Carolina
colored troops, was yesterday killed, in accordance with the sentence of a
court-martial. He had declared he would no longer remain a soldier for seven
dollars per month, and had brought his company to stack their arms before their
captain's tent, refusing to do duty until they should be paid thirteen dollars a
month, as had been agreed when they were enlisted by Col. Saxon. He was a smart
soldier and an able man, dangerous as leader in a revolt. HIis last moments'
were attended by Chaplain Wilson, Twenty-fourth Massachusetts, and Chaplain
Moore, of the Second South-Carolina colored troops. The execution took place at
Jacksonville, Fla., in presence of the regiments there in garrison. He met his
death unflinchingly. Out of eleven shots first fired, but one struck him. A
reserve firing-party had been provided, and by these hle was shot to death. "
The mutiny for which this man suffered death arose entirely out of the
inconsistent and contradictory orders of the Paymaster and the Treasury
Department at Washington." -Beaufort (S. C. ) Gor. Tribune. The United-States
Paymaster visited the Department three times, and offered to pay laborers'
wages, of ten dollars per month, to the Massachusetts Fifty-fourth and
Fifty-fifth, which to a man they refused saying,"' Tis an insult, after
promising us a soldier's pay, and calling upon us to do a soldier's duty (and
faithfully has it been performed), to offer us the wages of a laborer, who is t
0
INJUSTICE TO COLORED TROOPS. not called upon to peril
his life for his country." Find. ing that the Government had tried to force them
to take this reduced pay, Massachusetts sent down agents to make up the
difference to them out of the State Treasury, trusting, that, ere long, the
country would acknowledge them as on an equality with the rest of the army. But,
in a manner that must redound to their credit, they refused it. Said they, "'Tis
the principle, not the money, that we contend for: we will either be paid as
soldiers, or fight without reward." This drew down upon them the hatred of the
other colored troops (for those regiments raised in the South were promised but
ten dollars, as the Government also took care of their families), and they had
to bear much from them; but they did not falter. Standing by their expressed
determination to have justice done them, they quietly performed their duties,
only praying earnestly that every friend of theirs at the North would help the
Government to see what a blot rests on its fair fame,- a betrayal of the trust
reposed in them by the colored race. When they rushed forward to save our army
from being slaughtered at Olustee, it was the irrepressible negro humor, with
something more than a dash of sarcasm, that prompted the battle-cry, "Three
cheers for Old Massachusetts, and seven dollars a month! " (Three dollars were
reserved by Government for clothes.) Another soldier, a member of the
Fifty-fifth Massachusetts, complains as follows: "Eleven months have now passed
away, and still we are without our pay. How our families are to live and pay
house-rent I know not. Uncle Sam has long wind, and expects as much of us as any
soldiers in the field but, if we cannot get any pay, what have we to stimulate
us? 253
254 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. "To work the
way this regiment has for days, weeks, nay, months, and yet to get no money to
send to our wives, children, and mothers, who are now suffering, would cause the
blush of shame to mantle the cheek of a cannibal, were he our paymaster. "But we
will suffer all the days of our appointed time with patience, only let us know
that we are doing some good, make manifest, too, that we are making men (and
women) of our race; let us know that prejudice, the curse of the North as
slavery is the curse of the South, is breaking, slowly but surely; then we will
suffer more, work faster, fight harder, and stand firmer than before."
CHAPTER XXXIII. BATTLE OF HONEY HILL, SOUTH CAROLINA.
Union Troops.- The March. - The Enemy. - The Swamp. - Earth works.- The Battle.-
Desperate Fighting.- Great Bravery.- Col. Hartwell. -Fifty-fifth Massachusetts.-
The Dying and the Dead. The Retreat.- The Enemy's Position. - Earthworks. - His
Advan tages.- The Union Forces.- The Blacks.- Our Army outnumbered by the
Rebels. - Their concealed Batteries. - Skirmishing.- The Rebels retreat to their
Base. - The Battle.- Great Bravery of our Men.- The Fifty-fifth Massachusetts
saves the Army. HONEY HILL is about two and a half miles east of the village of
Grahamville, Beaufort District. On the crest of this, where the road or the
highway strikes it, is a semicircular line of earthworks, defective, though, in
construction, as they are too high for infantry, and have little or no exterior
slope. These works formed the centre of the rebel lines; while their left
reached up into the pine-lands, and their right along a line of fence that
skirted the swamp below the batteries. They commanded fully the road in front as
it passes through the swamp at the base of the hill, and only some fifty or
sixty yards distant. Through the swamp runs a small creek, which spreads up and
down the roads for some thirty or forty yards, but is quite shallow the entire
distance. Some sixty yards beyond this creek, the main road turns off to the
left, making an obtuse angle; while another and smaller road makes off to the
right from the same point. 255
256 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. The Union
forces consisted of six thousand troops, artillery, cavalry, and infantry, all
told, under the command of Major-Gen. J. G. Foster; Gen. John P. Hatch having
the immediate command. The First Brigade, under Gen. E. E. Potter, was composed
of the Fiftysixth and One Hundred and Forty-fourth United-States, Twenty-fifth
Ohio, and Thirty-fourth and Thirty-fifth United-States (colored). The Second
Brigade, under Col. A. S. Hartwell, was composed of the Fifty-fourth and
Fifty-fifth Massachusetts, and Twenty-sixth and Thirtysecond United-States
(colored). Col. E. P. Hallowell, of the Fifty-fourth Massachusetts, had, in
spite of his express desire, been left behind in command of Morris and Folly
Islands. As at the battle of Olustee, the enemy was met in small numbers some
three or four miles from his base, and, retreating, led our army into the swamp,
and ups to his earthworks. So slight was the fighting as our troops approached
the fort, that all the men seemed in high glee, especially the colored portion,
which was making the woods ring with the following song: "Ho, boys, chains are
breaking; Bondsmen fast awaking; Tyrant hearts are quaking; Southward we are
making. Huzza! Hluzza! Our song shall be Huzza! Huzza! THAT WE ARE FREE I! For
Liberty we fight, - Our own, our brother's, right: We'll face Oppression's
blight In Freedom's earnest might. Huzza! Huzza! &c.
BATTLE OF HONEY HILL. For now as men we stand
])cfending Fatherland: With willing heart and hand, In this great cause we band.
Hiuzzal IIuzza &c. Our flag's Red, Wlhite, and Blue: We'll bear it marching
through, With rifles swift and true, And bayonets gleaniiii)g too. uIlzza!
Iluzza! &C. Now for the Union cheers, HIuzza I-uzza! Huzzal For home and
loved ones tears, For rebel foes no fears. Huzza! Iluzza! Iluzza I And joy that
colnflict nears. Huzzal Iluzza I Our song shall be Hluzza! tIuzza! THAT WE ARE
FREE! No more the driver's horn Awakes us in the morn; But battle's music borne,
Our manliood shall ad(lorn. Iluzza I Iluzza! &c. No more for trailer's gold
Shall those we love be sold; Nor crushed be manhood bold In slavery's dreaded
fold. Iluzza I Huzza! I &c. But each and all be free As singing-bird in
tree, Or winds that whistling flee O'er mountain, vale, and sea. Iluzzal Huzza I
&C. The Union lorces approached the fort by the left road, which brought
them in front of the enemy's guns pointing 17 I -'!Mv 257
258 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. down the
hill, which was also down the road. An eyewitness of the battle gives the
following account of it: "The Thirty-second Uniited-States colored troops were
ordered to charge the rebel fort as soon as wve had got in position at the head
of the road. They attempted, but got stuck in the marsh, which they found
impassable at the point of their assault; and a galling fire of grape, canister,
and musketry, being opened on them, they were forced to retire. The
Thirty-fourth United-States colored troops also essayed an assault, but could
not get near enough to produce any effect upon it. These regiments, however,
only fell back to tlhe line of battle, whore they remiained throughout the
entire fight. "The Fifty-fifth Massachusetts (colored) went into the fight on
the right of the brigade, commanded by Col. Hartwell. The fire became very hot;
but still the regiment did not waver, - the line merely quivered. Capt. Goraud,
of Gen. Foster's staff, whose gallantry was conspicuous all day, rode up just as
Col. tIartwell was wounded in the hand, and advised him to retire; but the
colonel declined. "Col. Hartwell gave the order: the colors came to the extreme
front, when the colonel shouted,' Follow your colors!' The bugle sounded the
charge, and their the colonel led the way himself. "After an unsuccessful charge
in line of battle by the Fifty-fourth and Fifty-fifth Massachusetts, the
Fifty-fifth was formed in column by company, and again thrice marched up that
narrow causeway in the face of the enemy's batteries and musketry. "Capt. Crane,
of the Fifty-fifth Massachusetts, vlwhose .,AEl IImLi
BATTLE OF HONEY HILL. company had been left in! charge
of Fort Delafield, at Folly Island, but who, at his own request, had gone as
aide to Col. Hartwell, was, as well as th)e colonel, mounted. "Just as they
reached the marsh in front of the turn in the road, and within a short distance
of the rebel works, the horse of brave Col. Hartwell, while struggling through
the mud, was literally blown in pieces by a discharge of canister. "The colonel
was wounded at the same time, and attempted to jump from his horse; but the
animal fell on him, pressing him into the mud. At this time, he was riding at
the side of the column, and the men pressed on past; but, as they neared the
fort, they met a murderous fire of grape, canister, and bullets at short range.
As the numbers of the advance were thinned, the few who survived began to waver,
and finally the regiment retreated. "In retiring, Lieut. Ellsworth, and one man
of the Fifty-fifth Massachusetts, came to the rescue of Col. Hartwell, and in
spite of his remonstrance that they should leave him to his fate, and take care
of themselves, released him from his horse, and bore him from the field. But,
before he was entirely out of range of the enemy's fire, the colonel was again
wounded, and the brave private soldier who was assisting was killed, and another
heroic man lost. "Tl'e Twenty-fifth Ohio, soon after the commencement of the
engagement, were sent to the right, where they swung round, and fought on a line
nearly perpendicular to our main front. A portion of the Fifty-fifth
Massachusetts were with them. One or two charges were essayed, but were
unsuccessful; but the front was 259
260 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. maintained
there throughout the afternoon. The Twen. ty-fifth had the largest loss of all
the regiments. "The colored troops fought well throughout the day.
Countercharges were made at various times during the fight by the enemy; but our
infantry and artillery mowed them down, and they did not at any time get very
near our lines. Whenever a charge of our men was repulsed, the rebels would
flock out of their works, whooping like Indians; but Ames's guns and the
terrible volleys of our infantry would send them back. The Naval Brigade behaved
splendidly. "The Fifty-fourth Massachusetts, heroes of all the hard fights that
have occurred in the department, were too much scattered in this battle to do
full justice to themselves. Only two companies went into the fight at first,
under Lieut.-Col. Hooper. They were posted on the left. Subsequently they were
joined by four more companies, who were left on duty in the rear. "Many scenes
transpired in this battle which would furnish rich material for the artist. In
the midst of the engagement, a shell exploded amongst the color-guard, severely
wounding the color-sergeant, Ring, who was afterwards killed by a bullet.
Private Fitzgerald, of Company D, Massachusetts Fifty-fifth, was badly wounded
in the side and leg, but remained at his post. Major NuLtt, seeing his
condition, ordered him to the rear. The man obeyed; but soon the major saw that
he had returned, when he spoke sharply,' Go to the rear, and have your wounds
dressed.' The man again obeyed the order; but in a few minutes more was seen by
the major, with a handkerchief bound around the leg, and loading and firing. The
major said to our informant,'I thought I would let him stay.'"
BATTLE OF HONEY HILL. Like the Fifty-fourth at
Olustee, the Fifty-fifth was the last regiment to leave the field, and cover the
retreat at Honey Hill. The following account of the battle is from "The Savannah
Republican " (rebel), published a few days after the fight: " The negroes, as
usual, formed the advance, and had. nearly reached the creek, when our batteries
opened upon them down the road with a terrible volley of sphe- rical case. This
threw them into temporary confusion; but the entire force, estimated at five
thousand, was quickly restored to order, and thrown into a line of battle
parallel with our own, up and down the margin of the swamp. Thus the battle
raged from eleven in the morning till dark. The enemy's centre and left were
most exposed, and suffered terribly. Their right was posted behind an old dam
that ran through the swamp, and it maintained its position till the close of the
fight. Our left was very much exposed, and an attempt was once or twice made by
the enemy to turn it by advancing through the swamp, and up the hill; but they
were driven back without a prolonged struggle. "The centre agd left of the enemy
fought with a desperate earnestness. Several attempts were made to charge our
batteries, and many got nearly across the swamp, but were, in every instance,
forced back by the galling fire poured into them from our lines. We made a visit
to the field the day following, and found the road literally strewn with their
dead. Some eight or ten bodies were floating in the water where the road
crosses; and in a ditch on the roadside, just beyond, we saw six negroes piled
one on top of the other. A colonel of one of the negro regiments, with his
horse, was killed while fearlessly leading his men across the creek in a charge.
261
232 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. With that
exception, all the dead and wounded officers were carried off by the enemy
during the night. Many traces were left where they were dragged from the woods
to the road, and thrown into ambulances or carts. We counted some sixty or
seventy bodies in the space of about an acre, many of which were horribly
mutilated by shells; some with half their heads shot off, and others completely
disembowelled. The artillery was served with great accuracy, and we doubt if any
battle-field of the war presents such havoc among the trees and shrubbery.
Immense pines and other growth were cut short off or torn into shreds." It is
only simple justice to the Fifty-fifth Massachu setts Regiment, to say, that at
Honey Hill it occupied the most perilous position throughout nearly the entire
battle. Three times did these heroic men march up the hill nearly to the
batteries, and as many times were swept back by the fearful storm of grape-shot
and shell; more than one hundred being cut down in less than half an hour. Great
was its loss; and yet it remained in the gap, while our outnumbered army was
struggling with the foe on his'own soil, and in the stronghold chosen by
himself. What the valiant Fifty-fourth Massachusetts had been at the battle of
Olustee, the Fifty-fifth was at Honey Hill. Never was self-sacrifice, by both
officers and men, more apparent than on this occasion; never did men look death
more calmly in the face. See the undaunted and heroic Hartwell at the head of
his regiment, and hear him shouting, "Follow your colors, my brave men!" and
with drawn sword lea(iniIg his gallant band. His horse
BATTLE OF HONEY HILL. is up to its knees in the heavy
mud. The rider, already wounded, is again strulck by the fragment of a shell,
but keeps his seat; while the spirited animal struggling in the mire, and
plunging about, attracts the attention of the braves, who are eagerly pressing
forward to meet the ene my, to retake the lost ground, and gain a victory, or at
least save the little arminy from defeat. A moment more he is killed; and the
brave Hartwell attempts to jump from his charger, but is too weak. The horse
falls with fearful struggles upon its rider, and both are buried in the mud. The
brave Capt. Crane, the Adjutant, is killed, and falls from his horse near his
colonel. Lieut. Boynton, while urging his men, is killed. Lieut. Hill is
wounded, but still keeps his place. Capts. Soule and Woodward are both wounded,
and yet keep their command. The blood is running freely from the mouth of Lieut.
Jewett; but he does not leave his company. Sergeant-major Trotter is wounded,
but still fights. Sergt. Shorter is wounded in the knee, yet will not go to the
rear. A shell tears off the foot of Sergeant-major Charles L. Mitchel; and, as
he is carried to the rear, he shouts, with uplifted hand," Cheer up, boys: we'll
never surrender! 1" But look away in front: there are the colors, and foremost
amongst the bearers is Robert M. King, the young, the handsome, and the
gentlemanly sergeant, whose youth and bravery attract the attention of all.
Scarcely more than twenty years of age, well educated, he has left a good home
in Ohio to follow the fortunes of war, and to give his life to help redeem his
race. The enemy train their guns upon the colors, the roar of cannon and crack
of rifle is heard, the advanced flag falls, the heroic King is killed: no, he is
not dead, but only wounded. A fellow sergeant seizes the colors; but the bearer
will not 263
264 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. give them up.
Hie rises, holds the old flag aloft with one hand, and presses the other upon
the wound in his side to stop the blood. "Advance the colors!I" shouts the
commander. The brave King, though saturated with Ihis own blood, is the first to
obey the order. As he goes forward, a bullet passes through his heart, and he
falls. Another snatches the colors; but they are fast, the grasp of death holds
them tight. The hand is at last forced open, the flag is raised to the breeze;
and the lifeless body of Robert M. King is borne from the field. This is but a
truthful sketch of the part played by one heroic son of Africa, whose death was
lamented by all who knew him. This is only one of the two hundred and forty-nine
that fell on the field of Honey Hill. With a sad heart, we turn away from the
picture. But shall we weep for the sleeping braves, who, turning their backs
upon the alluring charms of home-life, went forth at the call of country and
race, and died, noble martyrs to the cause of liberty?'Tis noble to live for
freedom; but is it not nobler far to die that those coming after you may enjoy
it? "Dear is the spot where Christians weep; Sweet are the strains which angels
pour: Oh! why should we in anguish weep? They are not lost, but gone before."
CHAPTER XXXIV. BEFORE PETERSBURG AND RICHMOND. Assault
and Failure. - Who to Blame.- Heroic Conduct of the. Blacks. - The Mine. -
Success at the Second Attack. - Death of a Gallant Negro. - A Black Officer.
WHEN the mining assault on Petersburg failed, with such fearful loss in killed
and wounded, the cry went through the land that it was owing to the cowardice of
the negro troops; but this falsehood was very soon exploded. However, it will be
well to state the facts connected with the attempt. A writer in "The New-York
Evening Post" gave the following account of the preparation, attack, and
failure, a few days after it occurred: - "We have been continually notified for
the last fortnight, that our sappers were mining the enemy's position. As soon
as ready, our division was to storm the works on its explosion. This rumor had
spread so wide, we had no faith in it. On the night of the 29th, we were in a
position on the extreme left. We were drawn in about nine, P.M., and marched to
Gen. Burnside's headquarters, and closed in mass by division, left in front. We
there received official notice that the longlooked-for mine was ready charged,
and would be fired at daylight next morning. The plan of storming was as
follows: One division of white troops was to charge the works immediately after
the explosion, and carry 266
266 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. the first and
second lines of rebel intrenchments. Our division was to follow immediately, and
push right into Petersburg, take the city, and be supported by the remainder of
the Ninth and the Twenty-eighth corps. We were up bright and early, ready and
eager for the strug gle to commence. I had been wishing for something of this
sort to do for some time, to gain the respect of the Army of the Potomac. You
know their former pre judices. At thirty minutes after five, the ball opened.
The mine, with some fifty pieces of artillery, went off almost instantaneously:
at the same time, the white troops, according to the plan, charged the fort,
which they carried, for there was nothing to oppose them; but they did not
succeed in carrying either of the lines of intrenchments. " We were held in rear
until the development of the movement of the white troops; but, on seeing the
disaster which was about to occur, we were pushed in by the flank (for we could
go in in no other way to allow us to get in position): so you sqe on this
failure we had nothing to do but gain by the flank. A charge in that manner has
never proved successful, to my knowledge: when it does, it is a surprise. "Our
men went forward with enthusiasm equal to any thing under different
circumstances; but, in going through the fort that had been blown up, the
passage was almost impeded by obstacles thrown up by the explosion. At the same
time, we were receiving a most deadly cross-fire from both flanks. At this time,
our lieutenant-colonel (E. W. Ross) fell, shot through the left leg, bravely
leading the men. I immediately assumed command, but only to hold it a few
minutes, when I fell, struck by a piece of shell in the side.
BEFORE PETERSBURG AND RICHMOND. Capt. Robinson, from
Connecticut, then took command; and, from all we can learn, he was killed. At
this time, our first charge was somewhat checked, and the men sought' cover in
the works. Again our charge was made, but, like the former, unsuccessful. This
was followed by the enemy making a charge. Seeing the unorganized condition and
the great loss of officers, the men fell back to our own works. Yet a large
number still held the fort until two, P.M.; when the enemy charged again, and
carried it. That ended the great attempt to take Petersburg. "It will be thus
seen that the colored troops did not compose the first assaulting, but the
supporting column; and they were not ordered forward until white troops in
greater numbers had made a desperate effort to carry the rebel works, and had
failed. Then the colored troops were sent in; moved over the broken ground, and
up the slope, and within a short distance of the parapet, in order, and with
steady courage; but finally broke and retreated under the same fire which just
before had sent a whole division of white regiments to the rightabout. If there
be any disgrace in that, it does not belong exclusively nor mainly to the
negroes. A second attack is far more perilous and unlikely to succeed than a
first; the enemy having been encouraged by the failure of the first, and had
time to concentrate his forces. And, in this case, there seems to have been a
fatal delay in ordering both the first and second assault." An officer in the
same engagement said, "In regard to the bravery of the colored troops, although
I have been in upwards of twenty battles, I never saw so many cases of
gallantry. The'crater,' where we were halted, was a perfect slaughter-pen. 267
268 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. Had not'some
one blundered,' but moved us up at daylight, instead of eight o'clock, we should
have been crowned with success, instead of being cut to pieces by a terrific
enfilading fire, and finally forced from the field in a panic. We had no trouble
in rallying the troops, and moving them into the rifle-pits; and, in one hour
after the rout, I had nearly as many men together as were left unhurt. "I was
never under such a terrific fire, and can hardly realize how any escaped alive.
Our loss was heavy. In the Twenty-eighth (colored), for instance, commanded by
Lieut.-Col. Russell (a Bostonian), he lost seven officers out of eleven, and
ninety-one men out of two hundred and twenty-four; and the colonel himself was
knocked over senseless, for a few minutes, by a slight wound in the head: both
his color-sergeants and all his color-guard were killed. Col Bross, of the
Twenty-nintli, was killed outright, and nearly every one of his officers hit.
This was nearly equal to Bunker Hill. Col. Ross, of the Thirty-first, lost his
leg. The Twenty-eighth, Twenty-ninth, and Thirtieth (colored), all charged over
the works; climbing up an earthwork six feet high, then down into a ditch, and
up on the other side, all the time under the severest fire in front and flank.
Not being supported, of course the stormingpa,rty fell back. I have seen white
troops run faster than these blacks did, when in not half so tight a place. Our
brigade lost thirty-six prisoners, all cut off after leaving the' crater.' My
faith in colored troops is not abated one jot." Soon after the failure at
Petersburg, the colored troops had a fair opportunity, and nobly sustained their
reputation gained on other fields. At the battle of New
BEFORE PETERSBURG AND RICHMOND. Market Heights, Va.,
the Tenth Army Corps, under M aj or-Gen. Birney, met a superior number of the
enemy, and had a four-hours' fight, Sept. 29, in which our men came off
victorious. The following order, issued on the 8th of October, needs no
explanation: - "HEADQUARTERS, 3D DIVISION, 18TH ARMY CORPS, Before Richmond,
Va., Oct. 7, 1864. "GENERAL ORDERS NO. 103. "OFFICERS AND SOLDIERS OF THIS
DIVISION,- MajorGen. D. B. Birney, commanding the Tenth Army Corps, has desired
me to express to you the high satisfaction he felt at your good conduct while we
were serving with the Tenth Corps, Sept. 29 and 30, 1864, and with your
gallantry in storming New-Market Heights. "I have delayed issuing this order,
hoping for an opportunity to say this to you in person. "Accept, also, my own
thanks for your gallantry on Sept. 29, and your good conduct since. You have won
the good opinion of the whole Army of the James, and every one who knows your
deeds. "Let every officer and man, on all occasions, exert himself to increase
your present deserved reputation. "C. J. PAINE, Brigadier-General. "(Signed) S.
A. CARTER, A. A.G." "HEADQUARTERS TENTH ARMY CORPS, Aug. 19, 1864. " Major- Gen.
Butler commanding Department. "The enemy attacked my lines in heavy force last
night, and were repulsed with great loss. In front of one colored regiment,
eighty-two dead bodies of the enemy are already counted. The colored troops
behaved handsomely, and are in fine spirits. The assault 269
270 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION was in columns
a division strong, and would have carried any works not so well defended. The
enemy's loss was at least one thousand. "(Signed) Respectfully, "D. B. BIRNEY,
Major-General." " Seventy-five of our Black Virginia Cavalry were surrounded by
three regiments of rebel infantry, and gallantly cut through them; and an
orderly-sergeant killed with his sabre six of the enemy, and escaped with the
loss of an arm by grape-shot. He lies in an adjoining room, and is slowly
recovering." "Brave man, thy deeds shall fill the trump of fame, And wake
responsive echoes far and wide, And on contemners of thy race cast shame; For
thou hast nobly with the noblest vied. Thy deeds recall the charge at Balaklava,
Wherein six hundred were immortalized: Not any hero of that charge was braver;
And thy great valor shall be recognized. No wolf, pursued by hounds o'er hill
and plain, At last more savagely stands up at bay, Finding past efforts to
escape all vain, Then cleaves through dying hounds his bloody way. Thine was the
task, amid war's wild alarm, The valor of thy race to vindicate: Now admiration
all true bosoms warm, And places thee among the gallant great. It thrills our
hearts to think upon the strife In which, surrounded by the rebel host, Thou
didst deal death for liberty and life, And freedom win, although an arm was
lost. O lion-hearted hero I whose fierce sword Made breathless thy oppressors,
bravely bear Thy sufferings; for our sympathies are poured For thee, and gladly
would relieve or share."
BEFORE PETERSBURG AND RICIIMOND. At thle secold attack
on Petersburg, the colored troops did nobly. A correspondent of " The New-York
Times " wrote as followvs: "As everybody seemls to hlave negro on tllhe brain
inii the army, I may be parldoned for again lltliding to tlhe colored troops in
this letter. A single (day's woirk llas wiped out a mountain of prejudicc, an-d
iairly turned tlie )opular current of feeling iii this army in favor of tlhe
down-trodden race; and every one whlo has been wvithl tlhem on the field lhas
some story to relate of tiheir gallant conduct in action, or their hulnranity
and social qualities. The capture of thle fort before referred to is related,
among othler things, in evidence of tlieir manliood and gallantry taking
prisoners in tlhe exciting, moment of actual liand-to-liandt fighting, in ftce
of the Fort-Pillow and otlher simiiltar rebel atrocities perpetrated elsewhere,
upoln tlheir colored companions-inarms as evidence of their liumniity, - thllat
tlJey areo really soinetlhiig more tliaii the stolid brutes, suchl as some
people profess to believe. BLt, next to briavcry, one impl)roml)tu act of
tllcirs hlas done moro tllan all elsoe to remove at sup)posed natural
l)rejudlice agailist tllliii. WAVounded officers of two different brigades il
tlle Second Corps tell me, tlhat, when they relieved thlie colored troops in
firont Wednesday niglht, their iiiCen lla(l been out of rations all day, and
were very huiigry,, as im'Ly well be supposed. When thlis fact becamie k-nownvi
to the negroes, to use tlhea expressive language of a vwouILded officer,' They
emnptie(d their haversacks, and ga(ve tlle contents to our boy)s.' Tlhec colored
troops, I hlave had( opportunity to know, bear their lhonors neelly, Las become
men. IHereafter, the vile oath and offensive epitliet will not be blurted out
against tlhe negro soldier, 271
272 THE NEGRO IN THE AMIERICAN REBELLION. and in lhis
presence, upon every favorable opportunity, as has too generally heretofore been
the practice. This will be exclusively confined to the professional stragglers,
who are never at the fi;ont when danger is there.' Sergt. Peter Hawkins, of the
Thirty.-first UnitedStates, exhibited in the attack upon Petersburg marked
abilities as a soldier. All the officers of Company A being killed or wvounded,
he took commanld, and held it for fourteen days. All eye-witness said, " ile
appointed men for guard and picket duty, made out his regular morning report,
issued rationis, drilled his met), took'them out on dress-parade, or on
fatigueduty. Wlilatover iDiporta'nDt duty was devolvedl uponI him, hle was the
man to perform witlhout murilnuring. I-Ie is fuilly competent to fill the office
of a lieutenant or captain. He has clearly proven on the field his unflinching
courage and indomitable will." ...
CHAPTER XXXV. WIT AND HUMOR OF THE WAR. Negro Wit and
Humor.- The Faithful Sentinel. - The Sentinel's Respect for the United-States
Uniform. - The "Nail-kag." - The Poetical Drummer-boy. - Contrabands on
Sherman's March. - Negro Poetry on Freedom.- The Soldier's Speech. - Contraband
capturing his Old Master. WITH all the horrors of the Rebellion, there were
occasions when these trying scenes were relieved by some amusing incident.
Especially was this true with regard to the colored people. Thus when
Adjutant-Gen. Thomas first announced the new policy in Mississippi, and they
began enlisting freedmen, one was put on guard at night, at Lake Providence, and
was instructed not to allow any one to pass without the countersign. He was,
however, told not to fire upon a person until he had called out, " One, two,
three." The negro seemed not to understand it, and asked to have the
instructions repeated. "You are to walk from here to that tree, and back,"
continued the wThite sergeant, "and, if you see or hear any one, call out,' Who
comes there? Give the countersign., One, two, three.' And, if you receive no
reply, shoot." -" Yes, massa," said Sam. "I got it dis time, and no mistake."
After an hour or more on duty, Sam thought he heard the tramp of feet, and began
a sharp lookout. Presently bringing his gun to his shoulder, and taking sight,
he called out in quick succession," Who comes dar? Give do c6untersign. One,
two, three!" And" bang" went the 18 273 18 273
274 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. gun.
Fortunately, the negro's aim was not as reliable as was his determination to do
his whole duty; and the only damage done was a bullet-hole through the
intruder's hat. When admonished by the officer for not waiting for the man's
answer, the negro said, "Why, massa, I was afraid dat ef I didn't shoot quick,
he'd run." A colored sentinel was marching on his beat in the streets of
Norfolk, Va., when a white man, passing by, shouldered him insolently off the
sidewalk, quite into the street. The soldier, on recovering himself, called out,
- "White man, halt I" The white man, Southerner like, went straight on. The
sentinel brought his musket to a ready, cocked it, and hailed again, "White man,
HALT, or I'll fire I" The white man, hearing shoot in the tone, halted, and
faced about. "White man," continued the sentry peremptorily, "come here!" Hie
did so. "White man," said the soldier again, "me no care one cent'bout this
particklar Cuffee; but white man bound to respeck this uniform (striking his
breast). White man, move on!" A Virgiwia rebel, who has issued a book giving his
experience as a prisoner in the hands of the Federals at Point Lookout and
Elmira, tells the following story: " The boys are laughing at the summons which
S., one of my fellow-Petersburgers, got to-day from a negro sentinel. S. had on
when captured, and I suppose still possesses, a tall beaver of the antique
pattern considered inseparable from extreme respectability in the last dec
WIT AND HUMOR OF THE WAR. ade and for many a year
before. While wandering around the enclosure, seeking, I suspect,'what he might
devour,' he accidentally stepped beyond the' dead line,' and was suddenly
arrested by a summons from the nearest negro on the parapet, who seemed to be in
doubt whether so well-dressed a man could be a'reb,' and therefore whether he
should be shot at once. "White man, you b'long in dar?" " Yes." "Well, ain't you
got no better sense dan to cross dat line?" "I did not notice the line." "Well,
you had better notice it, and dat quick, or I'll blow half dat nail-kag off!"
The following doggerel was composed by a drummer. boy, aged thirteen, who had
been a slave, and was without education. He sung it to the One Hundred and
Seventh Regiment United-States colored troops, to which he was attached:
"Captain Fiddler's come to town With his abolition triggers: He swears he's one
of Lincoln's men, ' Enlisting all the niggers.' You'll see the citizens on the
street Whispering in rotation: What do they seem to talk about? Lincoln's
proclamation. Some get sick, and some will die, Be buried in rotation: What was
the death of such a man? Lincoln's proclamation. You'll see the rebels on the
street, Their noses like a bee gum; I don't care what in thunder they say, I'm
fighting for my freedom! 275
276 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. Richmond is a
mighty place, And Grant's as sound as a dollar; And every time he throws a
shell, Jeff begins to holler. My old massa's come to town, Cutting a Southern
figure: What's the matter with the man? Lincoln's got his niggers. Some folks
say this'almighty fuss Is getting worse and bigger;' Some folks say'it's worse
and worse,' Because I am'a nigger.' We'll get our colored regiments strung Out
in a line of battle: I'll bet my money agin the South The rebels will
skedaddle." In his march, Gen. Sherman was followed by large numbers of
contrabands. They were always the first to welcome our troops. On entering
Fayetteville, the gen. eral was met by slaves, old and young; and a man of many
years exclaimed, "Tank de Almighty God, Mr. Sherman has come at last! We knew
it, we prayed for de day, and de Lord Jesus heard our prayers. Mr. Sherman has
come wid his company." One fat old woman said to him, while shaking him by the
hand, which he always gladly gives to those poor people, "I prayed dis long time
for yer, and de blessing ob de Lord is on yer. But yesterday afternoon, when yer
stopped trowing de shells into de town, and de soldiers run away from de hill
ober dar, I thout dat Gen. Burygar had driven you away, for dey said so; but
here yer am dun gone. Bress de Lord, yer will hab a place in heaben: yer will go
dar sure."
WIT AND HUMOR OF THE WAR. Several officers of the
army, among them Gen. Slocum, were gathered round, interested in the scene. The
gen. eral asked them: "Well, men, what can I do for you? Where are you from?" "
We's jus come from Cheraw. Massa took us with him to carry mules and horses away
from youins." "You thought we would get them. Did you wish us to get the mules?"
"Oh, yes, massa! dat's what I wanted. We knowed youins cumin', and I wanted you
to hav dem mules; but no use: dey heard dat youins on de road, and nuthin'
would-stop dem. Why, as we cum along, de cavalry run away from the Yanks as if
they fright to deth. Dey jumped into de river, and some of dem lost dere hosses.
Dey frightened at the very name ob Sherman." Some one at this point said, "That
is Gen. Serman who is talking to you." "God bress me! is you Mr. Sherman?" "Yes:
I am Mr. Sherman." "Dats him, su' nuff," said one. "Is dat de great Mr. Sherman
that we's heard ob so long?" said another. "Why, dey so frightened at your berry
name, dat dey run right away," shouted a third. "It is not me that they are
afraid of," said the general: "the name of another man would have the same
effect with them if he had this army. It is these soldiers that they run away
from." " Oh, no!" they all exclaimed. "It's de name of Sherman, su'; and we hab
wanted to see you so long while you trabbel all roun jis whar you like to go.
Dey said dat dey wanted to git you a little furder on, and den dey 277
278 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. whip all your
soldiers; but, God bress me, you keep cumin' and a cumin' and dey allers git
out." "Dey mighty'fraid ob you, sar; day say you kill de colored men, too," said
af old man, who had not heretofore taken part in the conversation. With much
earnestness, Gen. Sherman replied, " Old man, and all of you, understand me. I
desire that bad men should fear me, and the enemies of the Government which we
are all fighting for. Now we are your friends; you are now free." ("Thank you,
Massa Sherman," was ejaculated by the group.) "You can go where you please; you
can come with us, or go home to your children. Wherever you go, you are no
longer slaves. You ought to be able to take care of yourselves." ("We is; we
will.") "You must earn your freedom, then you will be entitled to it, sure; you
have a right to be all that you can be, but you must be industrious, and earn
the right to be men. If you go back to your fami. lies, and I tell you again you
can go with us if you wish, you must do the best you can. When you get a chance,
go to Beaufort or Charleston, where you will have a little farm to work for
yourselves." The poor negroes were filled with gratitude and hope by these kind
words, uttered in the kindest manner, and they went away with thanks and
blessings on their lips. During the skirmishing, one of our men who, by the way,
was a forager, was slightly wounded. The most serious accident of the day
occurred to a negro woman, who was in a house where the rebels had taken cover.
When I saw this woman; who would not have been selected as a type of
South-Carolina female beauty, the blood was streaming over her neck and bosom
from a
WIT AND HUMOR OF THE WAR. wound in the lobe of her
ear, which the bullet had just clipped and passed on. "What was it that struck
you, aunty?" I asked her. "Lor bress me, massa, I dun know, I jus fell right
down." "Didn't you feel any thing, nor hear any sound? " "Yes, now I'member, I
heerd a s-z-z-z-z-z, and den 1 jus knock down. I drap on de groun'. I'se so glad
I sot dead, for if I died den de bad man would git me, cos 1 dance lately a
heap." A contraband's poetical version of the President's Emancipation
Proclamation. " I'se gwine to tell ye, Sambo, What I heard in town to-day,I
listened at the cap'n's tent: I'll tell ye what he say. He say dat Massa Linkum,
Way yonder Norf, ye see,Him write it in de Yankee book, ' De nigger gwine for
free.' And now, ye see, I tell ye What Massa Linkum done: De secesh can't get
way from dat No more'n dey dodge a gun. It's jes' as sure as preachin', I tell
ye, Sambo, true,De nigger's trouble ober now, No more dem lash for you.
I'spected dat would happen: I had a sense, ye see, Of something big been gwine
to come To make de people free. I t'ought de flamin' angel Been gwine for blow
de trump; But Massa Linkum write de word Dat make de rebel jump. 279
280 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. So now we'll
pick de cotton, So now we'll broke de corn: De nigger's body am his own De bery
day he born. He grind de grits in safety, He eat de yams in peace; De Lord, him
bring de jubilee, De Lord, him set de feas'. So now, I tell ye, Sambo, Ye're
born a man to-day: Nobody gwine for contradic' What Massa Linkum say. Him gwine
for free de nigger: De Lord, him gib de word; And Massa Linkum write'em down, 0
Sambo! praise de Lord!" When the teachers were introduced into Jackson, Miss.,
soon after the Union forces occupied the place, they found some very ignorant
material to work upon. One old woman, while attending the Sabbath school, being
asked who made her, replied, "I don't know,'zacly, sir. I heard once who it was;
but I done forgot de gentmun's name." The teacher thought that the Lord's name
had been rather a stranger in that neighborhood. During the siege of Port
Hudson, a new schoolhouse was erected for the black soldiers who had been
enlisted in that vicinity; and, when it was opened, the following speech was
made by a colored soldier, called Sergt. Spencer: - "I has been a-thinkin' I was
old man; for, on de plantation, I was put down wid de old hands, and I
quinsicontly feeled myself dat I was a old man. But since I has come here to de
Yankees, and been made a soldier for de Unite States, an' got dese beautiful
clothes on,
WIT AND HUMOR OF THE WAR. I feels like one young man;
and I doesn't call myself a old man nebber no more. An' I feels dis ebenin' dat,
if de rebs came down here to dis old Fort Hudson, dat I could jus fight um as
brave as any man what is in the Sebenth Regiment. Sometimes I has mighty feelins
in dis ole heart of mine, when I considers how dese ere ossifers come all de way
from de North to fight in de cause what we is fighten fur. Hiow many ossifers
has died, and how many white soldiers has died, in dis great and glorious war
what we is in! And now I feels dat, fore I would turn coward away from dese
ossifers, I feels dat I could drink my own blood, and be pierced through wid
five thousand bullets. I feels sometimes as doe I ought to tank Massa Linkern
for dis blessin' what we has; but again I comes to de solemn conclusion dat I
ought to tank de Lord, Massa Linkern, and all dese ossifers.'Fore I would be a
slave'gain, I would fight till de last drop of blood was gone. I has'cluded to
fight for my liberty, and for dis eddication what we is now to receive in dis
beautiful new house what we has. Aldo I hasn't got any eddication nor no
book-learnin', I has rose up dis blessed ebenin' to do my best afore dis
congregation. Dat's all what I has to say now; but, at some future occasion, I
may say more dan I has to say now, and edify you all when I has more
preparation. Dat's all what I has to say. Amen." After the fall of Port Hudson,
Sergt. Spencer was sent with his company into the interior; and, while in a
skirmish, he captured his old master, who was marched off by the chattel to
headquarters, distant about six miles. The master, not liking the long walk and
his heavy gun, began upbraiding his slave for capturing him, and, complaining of
his misfortune, stopped, laid I 281
282 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. down his gun,
seated himself on an old log, lighted his pipe, and said he could walk no
farther. However, old Spencer soon told the prisoner a different tale. Waiting a
reasonable time for resting, the sergeant said, "Come, boss, you's smoked enough
dar: come, I is in a hurry. I can't wait no longer." The rebel still
remonstrated with his slave, reminding him of what he once was, and the
possibility of his being again in his power. But these admonitions made little
or no impression on the sergeant, who resumed, "Come, boss, come: dis is no time
to tell'bout what you's been or what you's gwine to be. Jes git right up and
come long, or I'll stick dis bayonet in you."-" Well, Spencer," said the master,
"you carry my gun."-" No, boss; you muss tote your own gun. I is bin toting you
an' all your chilen des forty years, and now de times is changed. Come, now, git
up an move on, or I'll stick you wid dis bayonet" (at the same time drawing the
bayonet from its scabbard). "Massa reb" shouldered his unloaded shooter, and
reluctantly continued his journey.
CHIIAPTER XXXVI. A THRILLING INCIDENT OF THE WAR.
Heroic Escape of a Slave.- His Story of his Sister.- Resides North. Joins the
Army and returns to the South during the Rebellion. Search for his Mother.-
Finds her. - Thrilling Scene.- Truth stranger than Fiction. IT was in the month
of December, 1832, while Col. Rice and family were seated around a bright
wood-fire, whose blaze lighted up the large dining-room in their old mansion,
situated ten miles from Drayton, in the State of Ohio, that they heard a knock
at the door, which was answered by the familiar " Come in," that always greets
the stranger in the Western States. Squire Loomis walked in, and took a seat in
one of the three rocking. chairs which had been made vacant by the young folks,
who rose to give place to their highly influential and wealthy neighbor. It was
a beautiful night: the sky was clear, the wind had hushed its deep moanings. The
most brilliant of the starry throng stood out in bold relief, despite the
superior light of the moon. "I see some one standing at the gate," said Mrs.
Rice, as she left the window, and came nearer the fire. "I'll go out and see who
it is," exclaimed George, as he quitted his chair, and started for the door. The
latter soon returned, and whispered to his father; and both left the room,
evincing that something unusual was at hand. Not many minutes elapsed, however,
before the father and son entered, accompanied by a young man, whose 288
284 THE"NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. complexion
showed plainly that other than Anglo-Saxon blood coursed through his veins. The
whole company rose, and the stranger was invited to draw near to the fire.
Question after question was now pressed upon the new-comer by the colonel and
squire, but without eliciting satisfactory replies. "You need not be afraid, my
friend," said his host, as he looked intently in the colored man's face, "to
tell where you are from, and to what place you are going. If you are a fugitive,
as I suspect, give us your story, and we will protect and defend you to the
last." Taking courage from these kind remarks, the mulatto said, "I was born,
sir, in the State of Kentucky, and raised in Missouri. My master was my father:
my mother was his slave. That, sir, accounts for the fairness of my complexion.
As soon as I was old enough to labor, I was taken into my master's dwelling as a
servant, to attend upon the family. My mistress, aware of my near relationship
to her husband, felt humiliated; and often, in her anger, would punish me
severely for no cause whatever. My near approach to the Anglo-Saxon aroused the
jealousy and hatred of the overseer; and he flogged me, as he said, to make me
know my place. My fellow-slaves hated me because I was whiter than themselves.
Thus my complexion was construed into a crime, and I was made to curse my father
for the Anglo-Saxon blood that courses through my veins. "My master raised
slaves to supply the Southern market; and every year some of my companions were
sold-to the slave-traders, and taken farther South. Hus. bands were separated
from wives, and children torn from the arms of their agonized mothers. These
outrages were committed by the man whom nature corn
A THRILLING INCIDENT OF THE WAR. pelled me to look
upon as my father. My mother and brothers were sold, and taken away from me:
still I bore all, and made no attempt to escape; for I yet had near me an only
sister, whom I dearly loved. At last the negro-driver attempted to rob my sister
of her virtue. She appealed to me for protection. Her innocence, beauty, and
tears were enough to stir the stoutest heart. My own, filled with grief and
indignation, swelled within me as though it would burst, or leap from my bosom.
My tears refused to flow: the fever in my brain dried them up. I could stand it
no longer. I seized the wretch by the throat, and hurled him to the ground; and,
with this strong arm, I paid him for'and new. The next day I was tried by a jury
of slaveholders for the crime of having within me the heart of a man, and
protecting ny sister from the licentious embrace of a libertine. And, would you
believe it, sir? that jury Ad enlightened Americans, - yes, sir, Christiap.
Americans,- after grave deliberation, decided that I had broken the laws, and
sentenced me to receive five hundred lashes upon my bare back. But, sir, I
escaped from them the night before I was to have been flogged. Afraid of being
arrested and taken back, I remained the following day hid away in a secluded
spot on the banks of the Mississippi River, protected from the gaze of man by
the large trees and thick canebrakes that sheltered me. I waited for the coming
of another night. All was silent around me save the sweet chant of the feathered
songsters in the forest, or the musical ripple of the eddying waters at my feet.
I watched the majestic bluffs as they gradually faded away through the gray
twilight from the face of day into the darker shades of night. I then turned to
the rising moon as it peered 285
286 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. above,
ascending the deep-blue ether, high in the heavens, casting its mellow rays over
the surrounding landscape, and gilding the smooth surface of the noble river
with its silvery hue. I viewed with interest the stars as they appeared one
after another in the firmament. It was then and there that I studied nature in
its lonely grandeur, and saw ill it the goodness of God, and felt that he who
created so much beauty, and permitted the fowls of the air and beasts of the
field to roam at large, and be free, never intended that man should be the slave
of his fellow-man. I resolved that I would be a bondman no longer; and, taking
for my guide the north star, I started for Canada, the negro's land of liberty.
For many weeks, I travelled by night, and lay by during the day. Oh! how often,
while hid away in the forest, waiting for nightfall, have I thought of the
beautiful lines I once heard a stranger recite I "' Oh hail, Columbia! happy
land, - The cradle-land of liberty! Where none but negroes bear the brand, Or
feel the lash, of slavery. Then let the glorious anthem peal, And drown
"Britannia rules the waves: " Strike up the song that men can feel, - "Columbia
rules four million slaves I "' "At last I arrived at a depot of the underground
railroad, took the express train, and here I am."-" You are welcome," said Col.
Rice, as he rose from his chair, walked to the window, and looked out, as if
apprehensive that the fugitive's pursuers were near by. You are welcome,"
continued he; "and I will aid you on your way to Canada, for you are not safe
here."
A THRILLING INCIDENT OF THE WAR. "Are you not afraid
of breaking the laws by assisting this man to escape?" remarked Squire Loomis. "
I care not for laws when they stand in the way of humanity," replied the
colonel. "If you aid him in reaching Canada, and we should ever have a war with
England, maybe he'll take up arms, and fight against his own country," said the
squire. The fugitive eyed the law-abiding man attentively for a moment, and then
exclaimed, "Take up arms against my country? What country, sir, have I? The
Supreme Court of the United States, and the laws of the South, doom me to be the
slave of another. There is not a foot of soil over which the star8s and stripes
wave, where I can stand, and be protected by law. I've seen my mother sold in
the cattle-market: I looked upon my brothers as they were driven away in chains
by the slave-speculator. The heavy negro-whip has been applied to my own
shoulders, until its biting lash sunk deep into my quivering flesh. Still, sir,
you call this my country. True, true, I was born in this land. My grandfather
fought in the Revolutionary War: my own father was in the war of 1812. Still,
sir, I am a slave, a chattel, a thing, a piece of property. I've been sold in
the market with horses and swine. The initials of my master's name are branded
on this arm. Still, sir, you call this my country. And, now that I am making my
escape, you feel afraid if I reach Canada, and there should be war with England,
that I will take up arms against my country. Sir, I have no country but the
grave; and I'll seek freedom there before I will be taken back to slavery. There
is no justice for me at the South: every right of mry race is trampled ill the
dust, until humanity bleeds at every pore. I am bound for Canada, and woe to him
that shall attempt to 287 It
THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. arrest me I If it
comes to thle worst, I will die fighting for freedom."-" I lhonor your courage,"
exclaimed Squire Loomis, as lie sprang from llis scat, and wvalled rapidly to
and fro the room. "It'is too bad, continued lie, "that such men slhould be
enslaved iii a land whlose Declaration of Independence proclaims all men to be
firee and equal. I will aid you ill any tlhing tliat I can. What is your name?
"-"I have no name," said tlhe fugitive. "I once had a name, - it was WAVilliam,
but mfy master's niephiew came to live with himi; and as I was a hlouse-servant,
and thlle young master and I would, at times, get confused in tlhe same name,
orders were given for me to change mine. From tllat mnoment, I resolved, thlat,
as slavery had robbed me of my liberty and my name, I would not attempt to have
another till I was firee. So, sir, for once, you have a maii standing before you
without a name."-" I will name you George Loomis," said the squire. "I accept
it," returned the fugitive, and shlall try never to dishlonor it." True to
tlheir promises, his new fi'iends provided for his immediate wanvtits, and, as
sooll (tLs 1a fivorable opportuiiity occurred, started him on lhis joiriiney
north. George reacliecd Ctnadta in a. fvew weekls wxvitllott further adventure,
and settled near tlle city of Toronto, wlvere lhe resided, engagted in lhonest
labors and e.j)ying tile fruits of his industriy, until tlhe breaking-out of the
Rebellion, when hle returned to the United States, cager to take part in the
struggle. Owing to thle ftirne(ss of-his complexion, lie readily passed for a
vlwhite iail, and enlisted as such in a Michligan regiment in 1863. Ile was
withl Gen. Granut's arimy at tlhe siege of Vicksburg; and, after the surrender
of tloat stronghold, the regiment to wvliclh George belonged wvas 288
A TIIRILLING INCIDENT OF TilE WAIt. stationed in the
town. Hiere tlhe quadroon had amp)le opportunity of conversing with thle
freedmen, wlvJicih he often did, for hlo had not lost his interest in the race.
Going into a negro cabin one day, and getting into con versation with an old
woman, he found that she was originally from thle state of Kentucky, and laIstly
from Atissouri, and that they were from tlhe same nieiglhbor liood. As each
related the experience tlhrough which they had passed, the interview becatme
more and more interesting. Often they eyed each other, but there was nothing to
indicate that they hlad ever met before. Howvever, this was not to last long,
for George, in describing the parting scene with lhis mothler, riveted the
attention of tlhe old woman, wvlio, at its close, said, " Dat scripsliun peers
like my gal, but you canl't be no kin to lier. But vlwha,t's your name? "
eagerly asked tlhe woman. " William was my name, but I adopted the one I am
knownvn by nowv," replied he. "You don't mean to say dat you is Willi-.m?" "Yes:
thlat was the name I was known by."-"Wel]," continued she, "I had a son named
WAilliamn; bitt lie mun away, and massa went arter lhim, and catclied hIim, iand
sold him doviwn thle riber to do cotton-plaister. So 1)0 s(tid vlwhen lie came
back." Tlie features of tl-he two hicld changed so much in thirty years, that
tliley could not (discover in each other any traces wlhlatever of formner ac.
quaiiitanlce. " ily son," said the old woman, " llad a scar on ljis riglit
landr(." George sprang from his seat, and held( ouit the rigl-t hland.
Tremblingly she put on her glasses, seized tlhe hand, and screamed, " Oh, oll,
ell! I can't 'blieve dis is you. My son had a scar, a deep scar, on tlie side of
the left foot." Quick as thought, George took off the boot, and held up his
foot, while the old woman was 289
290 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN RIEBELLION. wiping her
glasses; for they were wet with tears. A moment more, and mother and son were
locked in each other's arms. The dead was alive, the lost was found. God alone
knew the sorrow that had visited the two since they had last met. Great was the
rejoicing at this unexpected meeting; and the old woman would, for several days,
cause Loomis to take off his boot, and show her the scar; and she would sit,
hold the hand, and view the unmistakable cut which helped her to identify her
long-lost son. And she would weep, and exclaim, "Dis is de doins ob de Lord l "
CHAPTER XXXVII. PROGRESS AND JUSTICE. Great Change in
the Treatment of Colored Troops. -Negro Appoint ments. -Justice to the Black
Soldiers. - Steamer "Planter." - Pro gress.- The Paymaster at last. - John S
Rock. THE month of May, 1864, saw great progress in the treatment of the colored
troops by the Government of the United States. The circumstances were more
favorable for this change than they had hitherto been. Slavery had been
abolished in the District of Columbia, Maryland, and Missouri: the heroic
assault on Fort Wagner, the unsurpassed bravery exhibited at Port Hudson, the
splendid fighting at Olustee and Honey Hill, had raised the colored men in the
estimation of the nation. President Lincoln and his advisers had seen their
error, and begun to repair the wrong. The year opened with the appointment of
Dr. A. T. Augusta, a colored gentleman, as surgeon of colored volunteersfand he
was at once assigned to duty, with the rank of major. Following this, was the
appointment, by Gov. Andrew of Massachusetts, of Sergt. Stephen A. Swailes, of
Company F, Fiftyfourth Massachusetts Regiment, as second lieutenant. M. R.
Delany, M.D., was soon after appointed a major of negro volunteers, and assigned
to duty at Charleston, S.C. W. P. Powell, jun., received an appointment as
surgeon, about the same time. The steamer" Planter" since being brought out of
291
292 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. Charleston by
Robert Small, was under the command of a Yankee, who, being ordered to do
service where the vessel would be liable to come under the fire of rebel guns,
refused to obey: whereupon Lieut.-Col. Elwell, without consultation with any
higher authority, issued the following order, which, for simple justice to a
brave and loyal negro, officially acknowledged, has seldom been equalled in this
or any other department. It is unnecessary to say that Robert Small took command
of the vessel, and faithfully discharged the duty required of him. ' OFFICE OF
CHIEF QUARTERMASTER, PORT ROYAL, S.C., Nov. 26, 1863. " Capt. A. T. Dutton,
Chief Assistant Quartermaster, Folly and Morris Islands. "SIR, - You will please
place Robert Small in charge of the United-States transport' Planter,' as
captain. He brought her out of Charleston Harbor more than a year ago, running
under the guns of Sumter, Moultrie, and the other defences of that stronghold.
He is an excellent pilot, of undoubted bravery, and in every respect worthy of
the position. This is due him as a proper recognition of his heroism and
services. The present captain is a coward, though a white man. Dismiss him,
therefore, and give the steamer to this brave black Saxon. "Respectfully, your
obedient servant, I/ 11 ~~"J. J. ELWELL. " Chief Quartermaster Department South.
It may interest some to know that the above order was immediately approved by
Gen. Gillmore. The following is very complimentary to Capt. Small: - "It was
indeed a privilege to enter Charleston, as we
PROGRESS AND JUSTICE. did recently through the
courtesy of Major-Gen. Saxton, in such a steamer as'The Planter,' and with such
a captain as Robert Small. It was their first appearance in the harbor since the
memorable morning of their departure in 1862. The fog detained us for a few
hours on our arrival at the bar. When it cleared away, you can imagine with what
cheer our anchor came up, and with what smiles and satisfaction the vessel and
her commander swept by the silenced and dismantled Sumter, and hauled in to the
waiting, wondering wharves of the ruined city. Wherever we went on shore, we had
only to say to the colored people,' The Planter and Capt. Small are at the
dock;' and away they all hurried to greet the well-known, welcome guests.' Too
sweet to think of,' cried one noble-looking old man, who had evidently waited
long for the good news of our day, as he hastened to join the crowd. "We met
Small afterwards, walking in the streets in peace and safety. When our rambles
about the humble place were over, and we prepared to depart, the scene about the
steamer was one that we can never forget. A goodly company of the leading
colored people were arranging for a public meeting with Gen. Saxton in the
largest hall of the city, to learn from his lips the purposes of our Government
on the following week. Their interview over, they joined a large crowd of their
own color upon the pier. Small was in the midst of them, with a couple of white
men in conversation with him. Curiosity led us near. He introduced us to the
builder of the vesel, and the maker of the engine and boilers.'I put the polish
on,' he added laughingly. They withdrew towards a couple of their own
complexion. He pointed out the principal person in the grouip, .293
294 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. to the
general, as Col. Ferguson, the original owner of 'The Planter,' and of all her
old hands, except Small. His owner did not show himself. "Upon our casting off,
the colored-folks raised at first a few feeble cheers, from a lurking regard to
the pale listeners behind them; but, when the general before them called for
three more for Capt. Small, every arm was swung, and every voice was raised till
the welkin rang. 'The Planter' has been placed under Geen. Saxton's orders. She
will be often seen in these waters. Hier new claims to her name are to be
manifested in her planting the freedmen of the captured city upon the
neighboring sea-islands and the mainland, on their own homesteads, for the
cultivation of their own crops of cotton, rice, corn, and whatever else they and
their families, or the world, may need. A great price was once put upon Small's
head. He and all his crew, white and black alike, will be worth their weight in
gold if they but continue to serve the general and the Government as we were
sure they did on their first return-trip to Charleston Hlarbor." There was one
step more which the Government had taken, that sent a thrill of joy to many
hearts. It was paying the men on the battle-field what it promised. The
following announcement was made by Gen. Saxton, at Beaufort, S.C., May 22: "
Colored soldiers, I have just received intelligence that the National
Government, after a long and desperate struggle, has decided to put you on an
equality with her white troops, making your pay equal with theirs. Now that she
has done justice to you, I want you to do justice to her and justice to
yourselves. Show yourselves men; and the way to show yourselves men is to be
brave
PROGRESS AND JUSTICE. and stout-hearted. I want you to
be particular in the execution of your' Shoulder arms,' your' Charge bayonets.'
Learn to shoot well at your enemies. You can do it, can't you?" (" Yes, sir!"
was the answer from the columns.) "Well, do it, then. There is no reason why you
should not make just as good soldiers as the whites. Do it, then; hold your
heads up, and be fearless and brave men. Two years ago, when I came here, I was
the first to organize a colored regiment into the UTnited-States service; viz.,
the First South-Carolina Regiment. The first lesson I taught them was to hold up
their heads before white men, and to say No. And now they are good soldiers. I
would just as soon have the First SouthCarolina Regiment to-day with which to go
into the field and face the enemy as any white soldiers in the service." The
paymaster shortly after made his appearance, and paid off the men; and thus
justice, though long kept back, at last came. Great was the rejoicing, both in
the army by the men, and at their homes by their families and friends. Progress
is slow, but sure. Every. where the colored population appeared to be gaining
their equalityi and rising to a higher level of lhumi4nity. The acknowledgment
of the civil rights of the negro had already been granted in the admission of
John S. Rock, a colored man, to practise law in all the courts within the
jurisdiction of the United States. The Supreme Court at Washington,
Chief-Justice Chase presiding, did not heap any more honor on Mr. Rock, by this
admission, than they gained by having so distinguished a scholar as a member of
the bar. Mr. John F. Shorter, who was promoted to a lieutenancy in Company D,
Fifty-fifth Massachusetts Regiment, was by trade a carpenter, and was residing
in Delaware County, 0., when the call was 295
V96 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. made for
colored troops. Severely wounded at the bat tle of Honey Hill, S.C.,on the 30th
of November, 1864, he still remained with his regiment, hoping to be of service.
At the conclusion of the war, he returned home, but never recovered from his
wound, and died a few days after his arrival. James Monroe Trotter, promoted for
gallantry, was wounded at the battle of Honey Hill. He is a native of Grand
Gulf, Miss; removed to Cincinnati, O; was educated at the Albany (0.) Manual
Labor University, where he distinguished himself for his scholarly attainments.
He afterwards became a school-teacher, which position he filled with
satisfaction to the people of Muskingum and Pike Counties, O., and with honor to
himself. Enlisting as a private in the Fifty-fifth Massachusetts Regiment, on
its organization, hie returned with it to Boston as a lieutenant, an office
honorably earned. William H. Dupree, a native of Petersburg, Va., was brought up
and educated at Chillicothe, O. He enlisted in the Fifty-fifth Massachusetts
Regiment, on its formation, as a private, was soon made orderly-sergeant, and
afterwards promoted to a lieutenancy for bravery on the field of battle. Charles
L. Mitchel, promoted to a lieutenancy in the Fifty-fifth Massachusetts Regiment
for gallantry at the battle of Honey Hill, where he was severely wounded (losing
a limb), is a native of Hartford, Conn., and son of Mr. William A. Mitchel of
that city. Lieut. Mitchel served an apprenticeship to William H. Burleigh, in
the office of the old "Charter Oak," in Hartford, where he became an excellent
printer. For five or six years previous to entering the army, he was employed in
different printing-offices in Boston, the last of which was "The Liberator,"
edited by William Lloyd Garrison,
PROGRESS OF JUSTICE. who never speaks of Lieut.
Mitchel but in words of the highest commendation. Gen. A. S. Hartwell, late
colo. nel of the Fifty-fifth Massachusetts Regiment, makes honorable mention of
Lieut. Mitchel. The citizens of Boston in Ward Six, where he has so long
resided, and who know him well, have shown their appreciation of Lieut.
Mitchel's worth by electing him to represent them in the Massachusetts
Legislature,an office which he is every way qualified to fill. 297.
C H A P T ER XXXVIII. FOURTH-OF-JULY CELEBRATION AT
THE HOME OF JEFF. DAVIS. Fourth-of-July Celebration at the Home of Jeff. Davis
in Mississippi. The Trip.-Joe Davis's Place.-Jeff.'s Place. - The Dinner.
Speeches and Songs.- Lively Times.- Return to Vicksburg. By invitation of the
Committee of Arrangements, a party of teachers and their escorts, and other
friends of the freedmen, embarked on board "The Diligent," on the morning of the
4th inst. "The Diligent " left the levee at Vicksburg soon after seven o'clock,
A.M., and made a pleasant trip in about three hours, down the river, stopping at
the landing at Davis's Bend; whence the party were conveyed in ambulances,
wagons, bug gies, and other vehicles, to the late residence of Jeffer. son
Davis, about two miles from said landing. DAVIS'S BEND. This is one of the most
extraordinary bends of the wonderfiul Mississippi River, and has received its
name from the fact of the settlement, on the peninsula formed by the bend, of
two members-of the Davis Family, known as "Jeff." and "Joe." This peninsula is
some twelve miles in length; and, at the point where it is attached to the main
land of the State of Mississippi, it is so narrow, that the enterprising
planters have dug a canal across, 298
HOME OF JEFF. DAVIS. not unlike the celebrated Butler
Canal of Petersburg fame, although not near so long. This canal is called the"
cut-off;" and, in high water, the peninsula becomes, in fact, an island. This
tract of land is of great fertility, being entirely a deposit of the rich soil
washed from the prairies of the Great West. On this tract are some six
plantations, of from eight hundred to twelve hundred acres each. Two of the
largest and best of these were owned by Jeff. and Joe Davis, and are known now
as "The Jeff. and Joe places." The form of this peninsula is such that a few
companies of soldiers, with one or two stockades, can keep out an army of
rebels; and the inhabitants, although frequently surrounded by the hordes of
Southern murderers and thieves on the opposite banks of the river and canal,
dwell in peace and comparative security. In fact, this site, from being the home
of traitors and oppressors of the poor, has become a sort of earthly paradise
for colored refugees. There they flock in large numbers, and, like Lazarus of
old, are permitted as it were, to repose in "Father Abraham's bosom." The rich
men of the Southern Confederacy, now homeless wanderers, occasionally cry across
for the Lazarus whom they have oppressed and despised; but he is not sent unto
them, because, between the two parties, "there is a great gulf fixed; so that
they w4hich would pass from hence cannot." On this freedman's paradise, parties
for cultivating the soil are organized under the superintendence of
missionaries; each party cultivating from tenl to one hundred acres, with a fair
prospect of realizing handsomely. These efforts are aided by the Government;
rations, teams, &c., being supplied and charged to each party, to be
deducted from the proceeds of their crops. Cotton is chiefly cul tivated, alid
somne very handsome stands appear. 299
300 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. THE " JOE
PLACE." The "Joe Place" is nearest the landing. The fine brick house, however,
is nearly demolished; but the cottage used as a sort of law library and office
is remaining uninjured. The negro-quarters also remain. THE "JEFF. PLACE." The
"Jeff. place " is also a very fine plantation. The residence has not been
injured, except the door-locks, and one or two marble mantels broken up,
apparently for trophies. The Jeff. furniture has been removed; but the rooms are
still furnished with furniture brought here. THE HOUSE THAT JEFF. BUILT. The
house is, in its grotind-plan, in the form of a cross,- but one floor, with
large rooms and ample veran. das. The portico in front is supported with
pillars, and these form the only ornamental features of the house, except such
as were added for this occasion by the artistic touches of our Northern sisters.
Of these were festoons, wreaths, stars, and garlands mysteriously woven in
evergreens and flowers. Over the portico entrance outside were the following
inscriptions, the letters being formed by cedar foliage: - THE HOUSE THAT JEFF.
BUILT." " WELCOME." The latter motto was arched, and, with the festoons, made a
beautiful appearance.
HOME OF JEFF. DAVIS. Inside were beautiful stars and
garlands of flowers; and over the exit at the back-door, the following
inscription, surmounted by a star: " EXIT TRAITOR." It was facetiously remarked
by an observer, that the moral was, "Down with the traitor, And up with the
star." We understood that to Miss Lee, of Pennsylvania, and Miss Jennie
Hluddleson, of Indiana, the party was indebted for those ingenious and
appropriate devices. Very likely; for wit and satire for traitors, and a cordial
welcome to the loyal and patriotic, are characteristics of these whole-souled
missionaries. The reception-rooms were also decorated with flowers; and every
thing around showed that "gentle hands" had laid on "the last touches " of
fragrance, grace, anli beauty. These "ladies of the Management" were dressed in
neat "patriotic prints;" they needed no addition to their toilets to add to the
charming air of comfort which they so appropriately infused. Their smiles of
welcome needed no verbal.explanation; and the heartiness with which they were
engaged in their labors of love, and the evidence of their success in all -the
surroundings, showed that they perfectly understood the science of making home
happy. Whether they have read Mrs. H. B. Stowe's "House and Hioine Papers" in
"The Atlantic,"' we know not, but there are many others, besides that literary
lady (Mirs. Stowe), who understand how to keep house; by magic touches to turn
the 301
302 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. most simple
objects into luxuries of ornamentation. We suspect also that Mrs. M. Watson and
Miss Lizzie Findley had been engaged in these preparations, although appearing
more in the character of guests. There were some other ladies, to whom we had
not the honor of an introduction, who, doubtless, deserve particular mention;
but your reporter, as the sequel of his story will show, only received his
appointment as a publication committee after all was over, and, consequently, if
he should omit anybody's name that deserves mention, this must be his apology.
He now declares his desire to be just to all, and especially to those whose
devotion and patriotism rendered the 4th of July, 1864, the hap. piest day of
the year. THE GROUNDS. On the grounds in front of the residence, the gunboat
crew suspended a string of signal colors, on each side of the "starry banner,"
presenting an effect amid the dense foliage of the live-oaks, and the gray moss,
"altogether beauteous to look upon;" while on the tables under the trees were
spread things not only "pleasant to the sight," but "good for food." And when we
saw these pleasing objects, the "work of their hands," and the merry, happy
faces of the guests and their "escorts," and reflected that the sable sons, by a
guard of whom we were surrounded, were "no longer slaves; "that they had, with
thousands of their bret:ilren, been brought out from the house of bondage, by
the "God of Abraham;" that the very house now occupied by missionaries and
teachers had, but a year algo, been in the service of despotism, built, in fact,
as 4
HOME OF JEFF. DATIS. a temple of slavery by the great
chief, who preferred to rule in a miserable petty despotism to serving in a
great and magnanimous republic, - we could but think that Hleaven looked
approvingly upon the scene; that "God saw every thing that he had made, and
behold! it was very good." THE EXERCISES. Rev. Dr. Warren conducted the
exercises as presi dent of the occasion; and he did it with that ease, free dom,
and regard for the rights and interests of all, which usually characterize his
public and social conduct. He opened the proceedings, under a grove of trees in
front of the house, with an appropriate prayer, and then called upon those
appointed to take part. Mr. Roundtree read the Declaration of Indepen dence in a
clear, emphatic, and impressive manner. It was listened to with becoming
reverence for the great truths it contains, by both the white and colored races.
It is quite improbable that these self-evident truths were ever expressed before
publicly in this locality, and within hearing of every one within the "house
that Jeff. built." When this place was first taken by our troops, the following
verse was found written on the wall: — "Let Lincoln send his forces here! We'll
lick'em like blue blazes, And send them yelping back to where They sung their
nigger praises.'" Rev. Mr. Livermore, of Wisconsin, delivered an appropriate
oration. The meeting then adjourned for dinner. 303
304 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. A gentle
shower at this time rendered the air cool and pleasant, but made it necessary to
remove the dining-tables to the house. THE DINNER. A sumptuous dinner was served
on the veranda at the back of the mansion. There was an abundance of all that
could be desired. This being concluded, the following sentiments were presented,
and responded to in an impromptu but appropriate manner by the various speakers:
REGULAR TOASTS. 1. The Day we celebrate: The old ship was launched in'76, the
bow. anchors cast out last year at Vicksburg and Gettysburg: may the
stormanchors be dropped to-day at Richmond and Atlanta! Response by Mr. Israel
Lombard. 2. The President: Proved honest and wise by four years of unprecedented
trial: we shall keep him there. Responded to by Dr. Wright. 3. Lieut.-Gen.
Grant: We can tie to him in a gale. Responded to by Col. Clark. 4. The house
that Jeff. built. Responded to by Capt. Powell. The following song composed for
the occasion was led by Mr. McConnell: "THE HOUSE THAT JEFF. BUILT." "AIR. -'
Auld Lang Syne.' "How oft within these airy halls The traitor of the day Has
heard ambition's trumpet-calls, Or dreamed of war's array I
. HOME OF JEFF. DAVIS. Or of an empire dreamed, whose
base -Millions of blacks should be! Aha! before this day's sweet face Where can
his visions be? Those empire dreams shall be fulfilled, But not as rebels
thought: Like water at the cistern spilled, Their boasts shall come to nought.
From gulf to lake, from sea to sea, Behold our country grand! The very home of
Liberty, And guarded by her hand. We revel in his halls to-day: Next year where
will he be? A dread account he has to pay: May we be there to see! And now for
country, truth, and right, Our heritage all free; We'll live and die. we'll sing
and fight: THE UNION! three times three. 5. The Army and Navy: Veterans of three
years. The heart of the nation beats anxiously at the cry, "Onward to victory!"
Response by Dr. Foster. 6. Our Patriot Dead: Silence their most speaking eulogy.
7. The Union: The storm will but root it the more firmly. Response by Rev. A. J.
Compton. " The Star-spangled Banner," - sung by the whole company, led by Mr.
McConnell. 8. Missionaries to Freedmen: Peace has its heroes. Response by Rev.
Mr. Buckley, chaplain Fortyseventh United-States Colored Infantry. 9. Gen
Sherman, second in command: "All I am I owe to my Government, and nothing could
tempt me to sacrifice'my honor or my alle giance." 20 305
306 THE NEGRO IN THE AMERICAN REBELLION. Response by
Capt. Gilpin, Commissary of Subsistence. 10. The Freedmen: Slaves yesterday,
to-day free: what shall they be to-morrow? The freedmen sung the following song:
"De Lord he makes us free indeed In his own time an' way. We plant de rice and
cotton seed, And see de sprout some day: We know it come, but not de why, - De
Lord know more dan we. We'spected freedom by an' by; An' now we all are free.
Praise de Lord! Praise de Lord! For now we all are free. De Norf is on de side
of right, An' full of men, dey say; An' dere, when poor man work, at night He
sure to get his pay. De Lord he glad dey are so good, And make dem bery strong;
An' when dey called to give deir blood Dey all come right along. Praise de Lord!
Praise de Lord! Dey all come right along. Deir blue coats cover all de groun',
An' make it like de sky; An' every grayback loafin' round He tink it time to
fly. We not afraid: we bring de child, An' stan' beside de door, An,' oh! we hug
it bery wild, An' keep it ebermore. Praise de Lord! Praise de Lord! We keep it
ebermore. De massa's come back from his tramp; 'Pears hlie is broken quite: He
takes de basket to de camp - For rations ebery night.
HOME OF JEFF. DAVIS. Dey fought him when he loud and
strong, Dey fed him when he low: Dey say dey wi forgive the wrong, An' bid
him'pent an' go. Praise de Lord! Praise de Lord! I Dey bid him'pent an' go. De
rice is higher far dis year, De cotton taller grow; De lowest corn-silk on de
ear Is higher than de hoe. De Lord he lift up every ting 'Cept rebel in his
grave; De negro bress de Lord, an' sing: He is no longer slave. Praise de Lord!
Praise de Lord! De negro no more slave." 13. Our Colored Troops: Deserving of
freedom because they fight like men. Response by Lient. Wakeman. Song: "Babylon
is fallen." The party, after selecting a few simple trophies, such as
fig-branches for walking-canes, large pond-lilies, flowers, wreaths, and
bouquets, returned to the landing, and re-embarked for Vicksburg. CLOSING